Selected quad for the lemma: soul_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
soul_n action_n body_n life_n 5,700 5 4.7855 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A75460 The comfort of the soul laid down by way of meditation upon some heads of Christian religion, very profitable for every true Christian. Composed and written by Iohn Anthony of London Doctor of Physick. Anthony, John, 1585-1655. 1654 (1654) Wing A3479; Thomason E739_1; ESTC R207006 271,347 376

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o power_n of_o sin_n will_v be_v kill_v in_o we_o that_o by_o the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o do_v serious_o consider_v these_o thing_n we_o shall_v not_o keep_v at_o so_o far_o a_o distance_n from_o piety_n and_o virtue_n and_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v such_o stranger_n to_o a_o christian_a life_n and_o conversation_n but_o we_o will_v use_v all_o mean_n to_o get_v into_o near_a society_n with_o christ_n by_o true_a save_a faith_n and_o by_o heavenly_a contemplation_n that_o the_o spiritual_a dew_n of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n may_v distil_v into_o our_o heart_n to_o sanctify_v we_o throughout_o both_o in_o soul_n and_o in_o body_n that_o in_o christ_n we_o may_v be_v make_v new_a creature_n to_o this_o end_n we_o must_v endeavour_v to_o keep_v our_o faith_n still_o in_o action_n and_o continual_o to_o use_v it_o upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o in_o every_o condition_n of_o life_n for_o thereby_o we_o shall_v draw_v strength_n and_o power_n from_o christ_n to_o carry_v we_o on_o through_o all_o temptation_n and_o trial_n and_o to_o support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o sorrow_n and_o tribulation_n it_o will_v purify_v our_o heart_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o suffer_v no_o sin_n to_o continue_v with_o we_o without_o repentance_n to_o hinder_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o rare_a example_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o believe_a thief_n may_v keep_v we_o from_o despair_n because_o 22._o because_o ezech._n 18_o 21_o 22._o there_o be_v mercy_n for_o a_o sinful_a soul_n if_o at_o any_o time_n he_o do_v true_o repent_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o full_a intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o will_n to_o reform_v his_o evil_n it_o do_v also_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o be_v secure_a or_o careless_a of_o our_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v extreme_o dangerous_a to_o loose_v any_o opportutunity_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n shall_v give_v we_o or_o to_o take_v so_o much_o liberty_n to_o sin_n as_o to_o forget_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o time_n for_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o all_o that_o we_o have_v do_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o our_o condition_n then_o will_v be_v most_o miserable_a if_o our_o reckon_n be_v not_o make_v perfect_a in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o great_a punishment_n in_o this_o life_n to_o have_v no_o sense_n of_o our_o spiritual_a misery_n and_o not_o to_o fear_v or_o remember_v the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n also_o this_o consideration_n shall_v keep_v we_o from_o rash_a judgement_n and_o censure_v of_o any_o man_n condition_n though_o he_o be_v a_o notorious_a sinner_n for_o god_n can_v give_v he_o grace_n to_o repent_v when_o he_o please_v as_o this_o one_o example_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o penitent_a sinner_n may_v keep_v we_o from_o despair_n from_o security_n and_o from_o rash_a judge_v of_o other_o so_o let_v it_o keep_v we_o from_o presume_v upon_o sin_n in_o hope_n of_o pardon_n we_o do_v wilful_o delay_v our_o repentance_n from_o day_n unto_o day_n and_o so_o continue_v impenitent_a to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o our_o life_n because_o this_o man_n have_v all_o his_o sin_n forgive_v even_o in_o a_o moment_n and_o be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n at_o the_o last_o hour_n for_o god_n may_v just_o deny_v we_o mercy_n if_o we_o refuse_v grace_n when_o the_o mean_n be_v offer_v to_o we_o so_o likewise_o let_v it_o keep_v we_o from_o presume_v upon_o repentance_n because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o repent_v when_o we_o will_n this_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v work_v in_o we_o if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o his_o holy_a inspiration_n or_o to_o make_v the_o right_a use_n of_o such_o mean_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o use_v to_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o seek_v unto_o he_o for_o it_o for_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o work_v it_o in_o we_o we_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n ever_o to_o obtain_v it_o now_o consider_v the_o strength_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o this_o poor_a sinner_n he_o give_v the_o high_a title_n of_o honour_n to_o christ_n when_o he_o we_o be_v scornful_o mock_v and_o in_o a_o most_o contemptible_a condition_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n he_o do_v embrace_v he_o and_o vindicate_v his_o honour_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o do_v believe_v that_o heaven_n be_v his_o kingdom_n though_o he_o be_v now_o revile_v and_o despise_v of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o he_o have_v the_o dispose_n of_o all_o honour_n and_o preferment_n in_o that_o kingdom_n which_o make_v he_o pray_v unto_o he_o lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n also_o his_o heart_n be_v touch_v with_o a_o sensible_a feel_n of_o his_o sin_n he_o make_v a_o pious_a confession_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v pray_v for_o mercy_n out_o of_o a_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o misery_n if_o we_o can_v show_v the_o faith_n of_o this_o penitent_a thief_n though_o our_o life_n have_v be_v as_o vicious_a as_o he_o be_v and_o though_o we_o turn_v to_o christ_n late_o as_o he_o do_v yet_o we_o may_v have_v good_a hope_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o we_o may_v comfortable_o expect_v his_o felicity_n for_o christ_n will_v return_v the_o like_a gracious_a answer_n to_o our_o prayer_n and_o the_o like_a promise_n of_o future_a happiness_n but_o what_o faith_n can_v we_o show_v if_o we_o still_o dishonour_v christ_n with_o our_o word_n and_o work_n how_o can_v we_o trust_v in_o he_o if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o all_o regal_a power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o and_o how_o can_v we_o hope_v for_o future_a blessedness_n from_o he_o if_o we_o be_v not_o confident_a that_o he_o be_v the_o disposer_n of_o all_o the_o glorious_a mansion_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n what_o godly_a sorrow_n have_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n if_o we_o still_o go_v on_o in_o a_o presumptuous_a way_n of_o sin_v and_o what_o hope_n be_v there_o of_o true_a repentance_n if_o we_o still_o cherish_v &_o foster_v our_o sin_n in_o our_o bosom_n if_o our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v no_o better_o than_o thus_o christ_n will_v not_o hear_v our_o prayer_n nor_o grant_v our_o request_n wherefore_o let_v not_o the_o devil_n delude_v thou_o with_o security_n or_o presumption_n lest_o he_o bring_v thou_o to_o perdition_n for_o many_o have_v perish_v with_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o deceitful_a hope_n look_v well_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o thy_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v well_o ground_v upon_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o those_o excellency_n that_o be_v in_o he_o that_o thou_o may_v firm_o rest_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o troublesome_a and_o dangerous_a time_n but_o chief_o for_o the_o redemption_n of_o thy_o soul_n neglect_v not_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o defer_v not_o thy_o repentance_n for_o god_n hate_v such_o as_o upon_o confidence_n of_o repentance_n in_o their_o old_a age_n do_v presume_v to_o sin_v the_o mo●e_n free_o as_o if_o god_n do_v not_o know_v the_o deceit_n and_o hypocrisy_n that_o be_v in_o their_o heart_n 20_o heart_n deut._n 29._o 19_o 20_o if_o thou_o do_v flatter_v thyself_o in_o thy_o wickedness_n and_o do_v bless_v thyself_o in_o thy_o heart_n say_v i_o shall_v have_v peace_n though_o i_o walk_v in_o the_o imagination_n of_o my_o heart_n to_o add_v drankenes_n to_o thirst_n then_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o spare_v thou_o but_o then_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o jealousy_n shall_v smoke_v against_o thou_o and_o all_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v write_v in_o his_o book_n shall_v lie_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o lord_n shall_v blot_v out_o thy_o name_n from_o under_o heaven_n consider_v further_o how_o much_o this_o penitent_a sinner_n be_v humble_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o of_o his_o unworthiness_n and_o also_o how_o bountiful_a and_o good_a christ_n be_v to_o he_o for_o he_o dare_v not_o presume_v to_o beg_v any_o inheritance_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o some_o remembrance_n of_o he_o when_o he_o come_v into_o his_o kingdom_n but_o christ_n do_v grant_v he_o a_o present_a possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o to_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n this_o paradise_n be_v the_o place_n of_o blessedness_n where_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v until_o the_o general_a
inheritance_n hereafter_o four_o when_o death_n come_v near_o to_o we_o we_o have_v most_o need_v of_o the_o best_a comfort_n both_o for_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o strong_o encounter_v with_o this_o terrible_a enemy_n in_o the_o dissolution_n of_o our_o soul_n from_o our_o body_n but_o christ_n at_o this_o time_n have_v sour_a vinegar_n give_v he_o which_o can_v no_o way_n comfort_v he_o but_o rather_o aggravate_v his_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n when_o he_o be_v every_o way_n in_o great_a extremity_n this_o do_v fit_o resemble_v the_o case_n of_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n for_o they_o be_v often_o trouble_v and_o perplex_v with_o many_o fear_n doubt_n temptation_n and_o evil_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o they_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o a_o single_a combat_n with_o death_n itself_o for_o than_o he_o will_v lay_v their_o sin_n before_o they_o with_o all_o the_o aggravation_n that_o may_v be_v and_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o hide_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n from_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o hope_n or_o comfort_n to_o support_v they_o in_o this_o great_a conflict_n which_o do_v put_v they_o into_o trouble_n of_o mind_n grief_n of_o heart_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v more_o uncomfortable_a and_o unpleasing_a to_o their_o spiritual_a taste_n than_o any_o vinegar_n can_v be_v to_o the_o palate_n then_o be_v the_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v most_o malicious_o bend_v against_o they_o than_o do_v he_o bestir_v himself_o to_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o their_o conscience_n to_o disquiet_v the_o tranquillity_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n to_o they_o in_o christ_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o comfortable_o resign_v up_o their_o soul_n unto_o god_n he_o will_v affright_v they_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n with_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n with_o the_o hypocrisy_n of_o their_o heart_n with_o their_o infidelity_n and_o unbelief_n he_o will_v labour_v to_o keep_v the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o god_n from_o they_o or_o else_o to_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o belong_v not_o unto_o they_o that_o so_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n also_o he_o will_v terrify_v they_o with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o drive_v they_o into_o despair_n but_o here_o be_v comfort_n for_o a_o poor_a sinner_n that_o it_o be_v thus_o assault_v by_o the_o devil_n when_o he_o be_v near_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n that_o christ_n have_v sanctify_v all_o these_o sorrow_n and_o conflict_n to_o he_o and_o he_o will_v confirm_v his_o faith_n and_o establish_v his_o hope_n upon_o his_o true_a humiliation_n for_o his_o sin_n and_o then_o those_o fear_n and_o doubt_n will_v vanish_v away_o for_o he_o know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v such_o temptation_n and_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o of_o body_n be_v such_o that_o we_o can_v withstand_v such_o strong_a assault_n and_o therefore_o christ_n will_v give_v most_o strength_n to_o our_o inward_a man_n when_o the_o outward_a man_n be_v most_o weak_a and_o he_o will_v most_o weaken_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o his_o malice_n be_v strong_a to_o do_v we_o hurt_v and_o though_o we_o may_v be_v dangerous_o foil_v in_o these_o spiritual_a combat_n yet_o christ_n will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n he_o will_v give_v we_o spiritual_a consolation_n and_o will_v speak_v peace_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o conscience_n when_o through_o weakness_n of_o body_n we_o can_v express_v the_o joy_n and_o comfort_n of_o it_o five_o before_o we_o can_v willing_o leave_v this_o world_n we_o must_v be_v well_o persuade_v that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o better_a habitation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v which_o holy_a persuasion_n that_o we_o may_v have_v we_o must_v serious_o consider_v how_o we_o have_v do_v the_o work_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v we_o how_o we_o have_v improve_v the_o talon_n that_o he_o have_v lend_v we_o how_o we_o have_v glorify_v god_n in_o our_o call_n and_o what_o good_a we_o have_v do_v to_o our_o neighbour_n according_a to_o the_o mean_n and_o ability_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o for_o we_o must_v give_v a_o account_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o our_o work_n wherefore_o if_o we_o can_v true_o say_v that_o we_o have_v do_v god_n work_n to_o the_o best_a of_o our_o power_n &_o with_o a_o upright_a heart_n and_o that_o we_o have_v well_o improve_v our_o time_n and_o our_o talon_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n than_o we_o may_v say_v with_o christ_n it_o be_v finish_v and_o with_o paul_n 8_o paul_n 2_o tim._n 7._o 8_o i_o have_v finish_v my_o course_n and_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n henceforth_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o the_o lord_n the_o righteous_a judge_n shall_v give_v i_o at_o that_o day_n and_o not_o to_o i_o only_o but_o unto_o all_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o appear_v and_o though_o our_o work_n have_v be_v very_o imperfect_o do_v by_o we_o yet_o christ_n our_o saviour_n will_v make_v it_o perfect_a by_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o in_o our_o nature_n and_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o for_o his_o sake_n then_o we_o shall_v cheerful_o resign_v up_o our_o soul_n to_o god_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o dissolution_n six_o christ_n do_v here_o teach_v we_o to_o commend_v our_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n we_o receive_v they_o immediate_o from_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o resign_v they_o up_o again_o unto_o he_o he_o breathe_v into_o we_o the_o breath_n of_o life_n which_o be_v our_o chief_a and_o most_o precious_a jewel_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v it_o holy_a and_o undefiled_a for_o he_o that_o when_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v for_o it_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o deliver_v it_o up_o to_o himself_o for_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a watch_v for_o it_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n and_o none_o can_v keep_v it_o from_o he_o but_o only_a god_n wherefore_o we_o must_v keep_v our_o soul_n so_o pure_a and_o clean_a that_o god_n may_v accept_v they_o and_o take_v they_o into_o his_o charge_n for_o if_o we_o present_v unto_o he_o a_o filthy_a soul_n pollute_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v take_v care_n of_o it_o and_o keep_v it_o unto_o the_o general_a resurrection_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v study_v and_o labour_n to_o keep_v our_o soul_n clean_o from_o sin_n by_o wash_v they_o daily_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v stain_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o day_n we_o shall_v thus_o cleanse_v they_o at_o night_n before_o we_o sleep_v and_o if_o they_o be_v defile_v with_o the_o pollution_n of_o the_o night_n ●_o we_o must_v not_o forget_v to_o wash_v they_o with_o the_o tear_n sigh_n and_o groan_n that_o flow_v from_o a_o sorrowful_a and_o contrite_a heart_n in_o the_o morning_n before_o we_o set_v about_o our_o necessary_a occasion_n in_o our_o call_n that_o we_o may_v comfortable_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v bless_v and_o prosper_v our_o handy_a work_n if_o this_o be_v our_o daily_a and_o constant_a practice_n the_o blessing_n of_o god_n will_v go_v along_o with_o we_o in_o all_o our_o action_n sin_n can_v then_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v death_n fearful_a to_o we_o death_n can_v then_o come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o neither_o will_v the_o remembrance_n of_o it_o be_v terrible_a but_o we_o shall_v cheerful_o commend_v our_o soul_n to_o god_n because_o we_o may_v confident_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v keep_v they_o in_o his_o heavenly_a mansion_n until_o they_o shall_v be_v again_o unite_v to_o our_o body_n with_o a_o unseparable_a union_n and_o make_v glorious_a body_n fit_a to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o but_o natural_a man_n know_v not_o the_o worth_n of_o their_o soul_n nor_o the_o great_a price_n wherewith_o they_o be_v redeem_v if_o they_o belong_v unto_o christ_n they_o suppose_v that_o the_o soul_n come_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o body_n do_v whereas_o it_o be_v a_o immortal_a spirit_n which_o proceed_v not_o from_o any_o mortal_a principle_n but_o be_v breathe_v into_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o body_n be_v frame_v in_o the_o womb_n and_o make_v capable_a to_o receive_v this_o breath_n of_o
it_o may_v run_v down_o to_o every_o member_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o be_v typify_v by_o 2._o by_o psal_n 133._o 2._o that_o precious_a ointment_n which_o be_v pour_v upon_o aaron_n head_n and_o run_v down_o to_o the_o skirt_n of_o his_o garment_n so_o that_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a light_n to_o discern_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o our_o peace_n then_o christ_n have_v wrought_v this_o life_n in_o we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o in_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n we_o be_v dead_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v heavenly_a 14_o heavenly_a 1_o cor._n 2._o 14_o and_o we_o can_v not_o receive_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v second_o if_o our_o soul_n can_v feed_v upon_o heavenly_a food_n and_o if_o we_o can_v express_v all_o other_o action_n of_o a_o spiritual_a life_n as_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o holiness_n to_o speak_v the_o pure_a language_n of_o canaan_n and_o to_o have_v our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n while_o we_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n we_o may_v then_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o for_o so_o long_o as_o sin_n reign_v in_o our_o mortal_a body_n and_o until_o there_o be_v a_o new_a creation_n wrought_v in_o we_o we_o be_v spiritual_o dead_a to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o we_o can_v express_v no_o action_n of_o a_o sanctify_a life_n three_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o the_o filth_n and_o stain_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n by_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o cover_v under_o his_o righteousness_n that_o they_o appear_v not_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n or_o to_o the_o hurt_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o that_o we_o delight_v not_o in_o any_o sin_n but_o do_v study_n and_o endeavour_v to_o serve_v and_o please_v god_n with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n it_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n that_o christ_n have_v quicken_v and_o raise_v we_o up_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n last_o if_o our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o god_n proceed_v from_o a_o clean_a and_o a_o purify_a heart_n which_o be_v sanctify_v and_o perfume_v with_o the_o grace_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n than_o god_n will_v smell_v the_o perfume_n of_o they_o to_o accept_v of_o our_o person_n and_o of_o our_o holy_a offering_n because_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o thus_o we_o may_v know_v to_o our_o great_a comfort_n if_o we_o narrow_o look_v into_o our_o condition_n what_o spiritual_a life_n we_o have_v and_o that_o we_o have_v it_o only_o from_o christ_n and_o by_o he_o wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o desire_v to_o live_v spiritual_o by_o christ_n thou_o must_v faithful_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v take_v away_o that_o spiritual_a death_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v upon_o thou_o for_o thy_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o only_o can_v give_v thou_o this_o spiritual_a life_n for_o as_o he_o have_v vanquish_v and_o overcome_v the_o power_n of_o death_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a so_o he_o can_v give_v a_o spiritual_a life_n as_o well_o as_o a_o temporal_a to_o who_o and_o when_o he_o please_v this_o spiritual_a life_n thou_o must_v have_v from_o he_o if_o thou_o can_v make_v a_o particular_a application_n of_o he_o to_o thyself_o by_o faith_n that_o he_o be_v thy_o saviour_n and_o thy_o redeemer_n for_o he_o have_v then_o breathe_v into_o thou_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v wrought_v this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o thou_o though_o at_o the_o first_o thou_o can_v feel_v no_o power_n of_o it_o without_o this_o application_n of_o christ_n to_o thyself_o thou_o can_v draw_v no_o comfort_n from_o he_o and_o he_o will_v profit_v thou_o nothing_o it_o do_v much_o comfort_n job_n in_o his_o great_a misery_n when_o he_o do_v thus_o apply_v christ_n to_o himself_o 27._o himself_o job_n 19_o 25_o 27._o i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v who_o i_o shall_v see_v for_o myself_o if_o thou_o can_v bring_v thy_o heart_n to_o close_v thus_o with_o christ_n he_o will_v give_v light_n to_o thy_o eye_n food_n to_o thy_o soul_n balm_n for_o thy_o disease_n and_o comfortable_a refresh_n for_o thy_o languish_a spirit_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v still_o dead_a in_o thy_o sin_n and_o have_v no_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n thou_o can_v then_o feel_v no_o comfort_n by_o he_o for_o what_o good_a can_v light_o do_v to_o a_o dead_a man_n what_o benefit_n can_v he_o have_v by_o the_o dainty_a food_n what_o can_v the_o best_a medicine_n profit_v he_o and_o what_o sense_n have_v he_o of_o the_o best_a perfume_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o christ_n and_o he_o in_o thou_o thou_o shall_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o fullness_n of_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n 19_o grace_n col._n 1._o 19_o for_o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v 16_o dwell_v john_n 1._o 16_o and_o of_o his_o fullness_n have_v all_o we_o receive_v and_o grace_n for_o grace_n now_o consider_v further_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n 14_o life_n tit._n 2._o 14_o for_o he_o give_v himself_o free_o and_o voluntary_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o to_o redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o from_o whatsoever_o we_o be_v liable_a unto_o by_o reason_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o satan_n from_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n and_o from_o eternal_a condemnation_n also_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o have_v subdue_v and_o overcome_v death_n hell_n and_o the_o grave_n that_o we_o may_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n to_o live_v a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n christ_n have_v wrought_v our_o redemption_n by_o his_o active_a and_o passive_a obedience_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o his_o sight_n for_o he_o have_v take_v our_o life_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n justice_n where_o we_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o enjoy_v it_o and_o have_v put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o mercy_n where_o we_o be_v sure_a through_o christ_n to_o have_v the_o comfort_n of_o it_o here_o and_o the_o happiness_n of_o it_o hereafter_o though_o we_o must_v pass_v by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n before_o we_o can_v enjoy_v the_o sweet_a consolation_n of_o this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o though_o we_o must_v bring_v ourselves_o so_o low_o in_o our_o humiliation_n and_o in_o mortify_v of_o our_o sin_n and_o corruption_n as_o if_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v thrust_v down_o into_o hell_n yet_o god_n will_v then_o give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n to_o support_v we_o he_o will_v then_o raise_v we_o up_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o our_o spiritual_a life_n may_v appear_v and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v fit_a to_o enjoy_v christ_n for_o ever_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o be_v the_o first_o main_a end_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v redeem_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n second_o christ_n be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o our_o spiritual_a life_n for_o as_o we_o have_v our_o justification_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n so_o we_o have_v our_o sanctification_n by_o the_o same_o blood_n and_o these_o two_o can_v be_v separate_v but_o must_v go_v together_o for_o we_o have_v no_o sure_a evidence_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o life_n the_o act_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v wrought_v at_o once_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n by_o faith_n but_o our_o sanctification_n must_v be_v a_o continue_a act_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n have_v so_o many_o spot_n and_o stain_n of_o sin_n in_o they_o that_o they_o have_v daily_o need_v to_o pray_v to_o be_v every_o day_n purify_v and_o cleanse_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v daily_o renew_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n this_o be_v the_o second_o main_a end_n why_o christ_n give_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o oblation_n for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v purify_v we_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n to_o himself_o according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 14_o paul_n tit._n 2._o 14_o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v unto_o himself_o
will_v still_o molest_v and_o trouble_v we_o and_o there_o be_v no_o evil_a in_o our_o affliction_n and_o suffering_n because_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o be_v change_v into_o fatherly_a chastisement_n which_o conduce_v to_o our_o good_a and_o not_o to_o our_o hurt_n also_o we_o may_v draw_v great_a consolation_n from_o our_o adoption_n if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o the_o right_n which_o we_o have_v thereby_o to_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o all_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n to_o all_o his_o blessing_n to_o whatsoever_o be_v good_a for_o we_o or_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o and_o also_o to_o a_o heavenly_a inheritance_n after_o this_o life_n be_v end_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n they_o will_v afford_v we_o matter_n enough_o of_o comfortable_a meditation_n for_o if_o we_o search_v the_o scripture_n 1._o scripture_n zech._n 13._o 1._o we_o shall_v find_v a_o fountain_n of_o mercy_n that_o god_n have_v open_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o sin_n and_o for_o nucleannesse_n wherein_o we_o may_v wash_v away_o all_o the_o guilt_n and_o stain_n of_o our_o sin_n if_o we_o can_v apply_v the_o stream_n thereof_o to_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n this_o fountain_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o mean_v 10_o mean_v joh._n 4._o 10_o in_o christ_n we_o shall_v find_v water_n of_o life_n to_o refresh_v our_o pant_a soul_n when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n or_o lie_v languish_v under_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n 58._o sin_n john_n 6._o 48._o 58._o christ_n be_v also_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n whereof_o if_o we_o eat_v by_o faith_n we_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o 11_o ever_o col._n 3._o 11_o thus_o christ_n be_v make_v all_o in_o all_o to_o we_o by_o faith_n 13._o faith_n 1_o cor._n 1_o 13._o for_o he_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n his_o wisdom_n will_v teach_v we_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n it_o will_v guide_v we_o in_o it_o and_o it_o will_v dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n for_o our_o good_a his_o righteousness_n be_v a_o garment_n of_o salvation_n to_o we_o his_o spirit_n of_o grace_n will_v enrich_v we_o with_o all_o heavenly_a endowment_n to_o lead_v a_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a life_n and_o conversation_n also_o 4_o also_o psal_n 103_o 3_o 4_o by_o his_o redemption_n all_o our_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v all_o our_o spiritual_a disease_n be_v heal_v our_o life_n be_v redeem_v from_o destruction_n and_o we_o be_v crown_v with_o love_a kindness_n and_o tender_a mercy_n let_v we_o consider_v also_o for_o our_o further_a comfort_n in_o our_o meditation_n on_o god_n 17_o god_n eph._n 3._o 17_o that_o christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n do_v spiritual_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o he_o do_v not_o come_v to_o lodge_v with_o we_o as_o a_o guest_n or_o to_o sojourn_v there_o for_o a_o time_n and_o then_o to_o be_v go_v from_o we_o but_o he_o come_v to_o abide_v and_o to_o dwell_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o he_o have_v take_v up_o his_o habitation_n there_o and_o our_o faith_n will_v cleave_v so_o close_o to_o he_o that_o he_o will_v never_o depart_v from_o we_o neither_o will_v he_o suffer_v we_o to_o depart_v from_o he_o we_o read_v that_o ittai_n the_o gittite_n one_o of_o david_n worthy_n will_v not_o leave_v the_o king_n when_o he_o flee_v from_o his_o son_n absalon_n but_o he_o answer_v the_o king_n in_o this_o manner_n 21_o manner_n 2_o sam._n 15_o 21_o as_o the_o lord_n live_v and_o as_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n live_v sure_o in_o what_o place_n my_o lord_n the_o king_n shall_v be_v whether_o in_o death_n or_o life_n even_o there_o also_o will_v thy_o servant_n be_v thus_o close_o do_v our_o faith_n cleave_v unto_o christ_n for_o it_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o leave_v he_o neither_o will_v he_o leave_v we_o but_o our_o faith_n will_v be_v still_o with_o christ_n both_o in_o life_n and_o in_o death_n o_o happy_a be_v our_o condition_n if_o we_o have_v such_o a_o inhabitant_n in_o our_o heart_n if_o christ_n have_v settle_v his_o abode_n there_o he_o will_v execute_v his_o priestly_a office_n to_o make_v intercession_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n for_o we_o 3_o we_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 3_o and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o a_o royal_a priesthood_n to_o offer_v up_o ourselves_o and_o our_o prayer_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o present_v unto_o he_o our_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n our_o thanks_o and_o praise_n for_o blessing_n and_o mercy_n receive_v and_o a_o break_a and_o contrite_a heart_n for_o sin_n commit_v which_o sacrifice_n god_n will_v not_o refuse_v christ_n will_v also_o execute_v his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v we_o the_o right_a way_n to_o true_a holiness_n and_o godliness_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o how_o to_o attain_v unto_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v so_o likewise_o christ_n will_v rule_v and_o reign_v in_o our_o heart_n as_o king_n by_o his_o spirit_n of_o grace_n to_o order_n and_o govern_v we_o in_o all_o our_o way_n and_o action_n to_o over-rule_v and_o subdue_v all_o the_o spiritual_a enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o protect_v and_o keep_v we_o from_o all_o peril_n and_o danger_n to_o provide_v for_o we_o what_o be_v needful_a for_o our_o good_a and_o also_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o in_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o keep_v we_o out_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o 8_o and_o 2_o tim._n 4._o 8_o to_o give_v we_o a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n which_o he_o have_v lay_v up_o for_o we_o at_o the_o day_n of_o his_o appear_v here_o be_v yet_o more_o matter_n of_o comfort_n to_o be_v draw_v from_o christ_n in_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o when_o he_o do_v spiritual_o dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o that_o by_o faith_n we_o do_v enjoy_v his_o sacred_a society_n for_o he_o do_v clothe_v we_o with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o he_o do_v endow_v we_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n for_o our_o sanctification_n that_o through_o he_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o overcome_v the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o so_o to_o overpower_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n that_o our_o sinful_a lust_n and_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o our_o flesh_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o we_o 16_o we_o rom_n 8._o 16_o and_o his_o spirit_n will_v bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n christ_n will_v also_o put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n to_o discern_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n which_o a_o natural_a man_n can_v do_v and_o to_o know_v our_o own_o condition_n from_o whence_o we_o be_v fall_v and_o how_o to_o be_v recover_v he_o will_v give_v we_o grace_n upon_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o be_v true_o humble_v for_o they_o to_o repent_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o delight_v to_o dwell_v with_o those_o that_o be_v of_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n according_a as_o he_o speak_v by_o his_o prophet_n 15_o prophet_n isaiah_n 57_o 15_o thus_o say_v the_o high_a and_o lofty_a one_o that_o inhabit_v eternity_n who_o name_n be_v holy_a i_o dwell_v in_o the_o high_a and_o lofty_a place_n with_o he_o also_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrite_a and_o humble_a spirit_n to_o revive_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o humble_a and_o to_o revive_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o contrite_a one_o christ_n will_v also_o change_v the_o perversenenesse_n of_o the_o will_n to_o put_v it_o into_o a_o frame_n of_o conformity_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v take_v off_o the_o immoderate_a affection_n of_o our_o heart_n from_o all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n to_o study_v holiness_n of_o life_n to_o love_v that_o which_o christ_n love_v to_o delight_v in_o his_o commandment_n and_o in_o his_o ordinance_n and_o to_o practice_v with_o a_o willing_a mind_n all_o holy_a duty_n which_o he_o require_v both_o to_o god_n and_o to_o our_o neighbour_n in_o public_a and_o in_o private_a at_o home_n in_o our_o family_n and_o to_o other_o upon_o all_o occasion_n then_o we_o shall_v find_v heavenly_a joy_n and_o spiritual_a consolation_n when_o we_o set_v our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v thus_o on_o god_n in_o christ_n wherefore_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o great_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n which_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n shall_v be_v strong_a and_o prevalent_a motive_n to_o we_o to_o prepare_v our_o heart_n to_o receive_v he_o to_o enlarge_v our_o
shall_v see_v 9_o see_v gen._n 47_o 9_o that_o our_o day_n be_v few_o and_o evil_a as_o jacob_n say_v unto_o pharaoh_n and_o holy_a david_n will_v tell_v we_o 4._o we_o psa_fw-la 144._o 4._o that_o man_n be_v like_a to_o vanity_n his_o day_n be_v as_o a_o shadow_n that_o pass_v away_o also_o 5._o also_o psal_n 39_o 5._o that_o our_o day_n be_v as_o a_o hand-breadth_n and_o our_o age_n be_v as_o nothing_o before_o god_n and_o in_o another_o psalm_n he_o say_v thus_o 16._o thus_o psal_n 103._o 15_o 16._o as_o for_o man_n his_o day_n be_v as_o grass_n as_o a_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n so_o he_o flowrish_v for_o the_o wind_n pass_v over_o it_o and_o it_o be_v go_v and_o the_o place_n thereof_o shall_v know_v it_o no_o more_o thus_o say_v holy_a job_n 7_o job_n job_n 7._o 6._o 7_o my_o day_n be_v swift_a than_o a_o weaver_n shuttle_n and_o be_v spend_v without_o hope_n o_o remember_v that_o my_o life_n be_v wind_n if_o our_o life_n be_v wind_n how_o soon_o then_o be_v it_o go_v how_o little_a then_o be_v the_o time_n of_o grace_n and_o yet_o upon_o this_o little_a moment_n depend_v our_o eternal_a happiness_n for_o when_o this_o life_n be_v end_v there_o be_v no_o more_o time_n for_o grace_n or_o to_o seek_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v extreme_a folly_n to_o lose_v any_o part_n of_o this_o precious_a time_n without_o some_o gain_n of_o grace_n or_o to_o spend_v it_o to_o any_o other_o end_n than_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n then_o much_o more_o to_o waste_v it_o in_o sinful_a pleasure_n to_o the_o great_a dishonour_n of_o his_o name_n and_o to_o the_o destruction_n and_o loss_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n yet_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o the_o frailty_n of_o our_o unregenerate_a part_n we_o be_v subject_a to_o many_o slip_n and_o fail_n and_o sometime_o we_o do_v so_o dangerous_o fall_v that_o god_n will_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o we_o and_o eclipse_v the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o gracious_a countenance_n for_o a_o time_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o sense_n nor_o apprehension_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n to_o we_o and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o spirit_n will_v seem_v to_o we_o to_o be_v wither_v and_o dry_v up_o but_o god_n have_v his_o special_a time_n of_o grace_n when_o he_o will_v be_v find_v of_o we_o and_o when_o he_o will_v gracious_o accept_v we_o and_o will_v manifest_v again_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n shall_v again_o shine_v forth_o in_o we_o when_o god_n have_v wrought_v his_o own_o work_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o have_v humble_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n with_o his_o rod_n he_o will_v then_o call_v to_o we_o say_v 8._o say_v psal_n 27._o 8._o seek_v you_o my_o face_n and_o our_o heart_n must_v present_o answer_v with_o david_n thy_o face_n lord_n will_v we_o seek_v for_o to_o answer_v present_o to_o god_n call_v be_v the_o time_n of_o gracious_a acceptation_n thus_o say_v david_n i_o acknowledge_v my_o sin_n unto_o thou_o and_o my_o iniquity_n have_v i_o not_o hide_v i_o say_v 6._o k_o ps_n 32._o 5_o 6._o i_o will_v confess_v my_o transgression_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o forgave_v the_o iniquity_n of_o my_o sin_n for_o this_o shall_v every_o one_o that_o be_v godly_a prey_n unto_o thou_o in_o a_o time_n when_o thou_o may_v be_v find_v also_o when_o we_o seek_v with_o all_o faithful_a diligence_n unto_o the_o lord_n in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o sue_v unto_o he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v find_v he_o gracious_a and_o propitious_a to_o we_o as_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 14._o prophet_n jer._n 29._o 12_o 13_o 14._o then_o shall_v you_o call_v upon_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v go_v and_o pray_v unto_o i_o and_o i_o will_v hearken_v unto_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o and_o find_v i_o when_o you_o shall_v search_v for_o i_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o i_o will_v be_v find_v of_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n set_v down_o a_o more_o particular_a time_n of_o grace_n 13._o grace_n heb._n 3._o 7_o 13._o to_o day_n if_o you_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n harden_v not_o ●our_n heart_n and_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n lest_o any_o of_o you_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n for_o god_n do_v call_v to_o we_o every_o day_n by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o to_o seek_v his_o face_n and_o his_o favour_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o put_v off_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n until_o the_o morrow_n for_o as_o james_n say_v 14_o say_v jam._n 4._o 14_o w●_n know_v not_o what_o shall_v be_v on_o th●_n morrow_n for_o what_o be_v our_o life_n it_o be_v even_o a_o vapour_n that_o appear_v for_o a_o little_a time_n and_o then_o vanish_v away_o it_o be_v now_o plain_a and_o evident_a that_o the_o principal_a time_n of_o grace_n be_v when_o god_n be_v please_v to_o offer_v it_o and_o when_o he_o do_v give_v we_o the_o mean_n to_o attain_v unto_o it_o for_o god_n keep_v the_o gift_n of_o grace_n in_o his_o own_o power_n to_o give_v it_o to_o who_o and_o when_o he_o please_v and_o except_o god_n do_v offer_v it_o we_o can_v receive_v it_o the_o very_a first_o desire_n of_o seek_v grace_n be_v god_n free_a offer_n of_o it_o to_o we_o for_o he_o do_v incline_v the_o will_n and_o work_v those_o holy_a desire_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n sometime_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v work_v they_o in_o we_o upon_o the_o true_a sight_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o thereby_o move_v we_o to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o true_a repentance_n according_a to_o this_o of_o the_o prophet_n 7_o prophet_n isa_n 55._o 6_o 7_o seek_v you_o the_o lord_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v call_v you_o upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v near_o let_v the_o wicked_a forsake_v his_o way_n and_o the_o unrighteous_a man_n his_o thought_n and_o let_v he_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o and_o to_o our_o god_n for_o he_o will_v abundant_o pardon_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v also_o work_v thus_o in_o our_o heart_n upon_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n and_o upon_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o affliction_n and_o tribulation_n to_o humble_v our_o soul_n before_o god_n that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v prepare_v to_o seek_v his_o love_n and_o favour_n by_o fervent_a prayer_n thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 16._o prophet_n isa_n 26._o 16._o lord_n in_o trouble_n have_v they_o visit_v thou_o they_o pour_v out_o a_o prayer_n when_o thy_o chasten_n be_v upon_o they_o if_o we_o do_v due_o consider_v these_o thiog_n and_o ponder_v well_o upon_o they_o in_o our_o heart_n it_o will_v teach_v we_o high_o to_o prize_v that_o time_n which_o god_n do_v lend_v we_o here_o in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o gain_n of_o grace_n that_o hereafter_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o eternal_a happiness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o not_o to_o refuse_v any_o offer_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n shall_v make_v unto_o we_o first_o because_o o●r_v time_n be_v short_a and_o momentany_a and_o we_o know_v not_o how_o long_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o second_o because_o our_o little_a time_n be_v transitory_a and_o pass_v swift_o away_o and_o we_o can_v recall_v one_o moment_n that_o be_v go_v three_o because_o it_o be_v the_o time_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o grace_n and_o the_o time_n of_o his_o gracious_a acceptation_n four_o because_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n both_o of_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n depend_v upon_o this_o short_a time_n of_o our_o life_n last_o if_o we_o lose_v any_o opportunity_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n do_v give_v we_o we_o show_v great_a unthankfulness_n to_o god_n and_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o will_v give_v we_o another_o opportunity_n for_o it_o wherefore_o we_o shall_v not_o spend_v our_o time_n idle_o or_o unprofitable_o but_o we_o must_v with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n improve_v it_o to_o those_o end_n for_o which_o god_n have_v give_v it_o to_o make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a by_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n who_o we_o have_v offend_v and_o to_o regain_v his_o love_n and_o favour_n when_o we_o have_v lose_v the_o apprehension_n of_o it_o by_o our_o sin_n many_o heavenly_a comfort_n we_o shall_v find_v if_o we_o listen_v to_o god_n call_v and_o receive_v grace_n when_o he_o do_v offer_v it_o first_o god_n will_v be_v find_v of_o we_o if_o we_o seek_v he_o with_o pure_a affection_n and_o in_o the_o uprightness_n of_o our_o heart_n second_o he_o
he_o smite_v he_o with_o his_o sword_n and_o he_o die_v 29._o die_v 2_o sam._n 13._o 28_o 29._o thus_o treacherous_o do_v absalon_n kill_v his_o brother_n amnon_n when_o he_o invite_v he_o to_o a_o feast_n in_o his_o own_o house_n the_o disciple_n do_v little_o think_v that_o judas_n betray_v his_o master_n when_o he_o come_v and_o salute_v he_o with_o a_o kiss_n but_o christ_n know_v it_o who_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n and_o none_o but_o he_o can_v know_v it_o for_o he_o know_v what_o he_o have_v do_v with_o the_o ruler_n what_o compact_n and_o bargain_n he_o have_v make_v with_o they_o and_o what_o he_o do_v further_a purpose_n and_o intend_v to_o do_v and_o therefore_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o 4●_n he_o luke_n 22._o 4●_n judas_z betray_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o man_n with_o a_o kiss_n thus_o say_v a_o reverend_a divine_a it_o be_v a_o special_a cunning_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o it_o be_v full_a of_o danger_n to_o put_v a_o smile_a and_o a_o allure_a countenance_n upon_o his_o bait_n as_o he_o do_v by_o his_o temptation_n of_o profit_n and_o gain_v which_o like_o unseen_a bullet_n wound_n and_o kill_v before_o they_o be_v discern_v or_o like_o the_o viper_n that_o put_v we_o to_o no_o pain_n bring_v we_o into_o a_o please_a slumber_n of_o security_n which_o end_v in_o the_o dead_a sleep_n of_o death_n and_o condemnation_n for_o prosperity_n and_o worldly_a allurement_n hide_v hostility_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o friendship_n and_o make_v we_o love_v the_o weapon_n that_o hurt_v we_o and_o to_o refuse_v the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v cure_v and_o these_o make_v conquest_n not_o only_o of_o our_o power_n and_o strength_n but_o also_o of_o our_o heart_n will_n and_o affection_n and_o they_o retain_v we_o in_o a_o voluntary_a servitude_n have_v no_o desire_n to_o come_v out_o of_o this_o please_a bondage_n or_o to_o recover_v our_o liberty_n though_o the_o mean_n be_v offer_v to_o we_o this_o be_v the_o policy_n and_o subtle_a cunning_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o beguile_v poor_a soul_n with_o such_o fair_a pretence_n for_o in_o their_o smile_n and_o fawn_n he_o do_v secret_o attempt_v their_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n consider_v further_o 8._o further_o mat._n 10._o 1_o 8._o that_o when_o jesus_n send_v forth_o his_o twelve_o disciple_n to_o preach_v he_o give_v unto_o they_o all_o power_n against_o unclean_a spirit_n to_o cast_v they_o out_o to_o heal_v all_o manner_n of_o sickness_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o disease_n to_o cleanse_v the_o leper_n and_o to_o raise_v the_o dead_a they_o have_v free_o receive_v these_o gift_n of_o he_o and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v free_o dispense_v they_o judas_n have_v the_o same_o power_n and_o receive_v the_o same_o gift_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n but_o because_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o season_v with_o sanctify_a grace_n though_o he_o do_v cure_v other_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o cure_v himself_o and_o though_o 29._o though_o 1_o cor._n 9_o 29._o he_o do_v preach_v to_o other_o yet_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o castaway_n he_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o preach_v but_o not_o the_o grace_n of_o preach_v he_o have_v faith_n to_o work_v miracle_n but_o not_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n unto_o justification_n and_o to_o rest_n and_o confide_v in_o christ_n for_o his_o salvation_n these_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v sometime_o give_v to_o unregenerate_a man_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v no_o whit_n near_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n wherefore_o let_v no_o man_n rest_v secure_a of_o his_o salvation_n because_o he_o have_v such_o excellent_a gift_n for_o except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v confer_v sanctify_v grace_n with_o his_o gift_n they_o will_v not_o be_v effectual_a to_o salvation_n we_o may_v have_v the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n of_o temperance_n of_o continency_n of_o patience_n and_o of_o all_o moral_a virtue_n and_o yet_o if_o we_o have_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n that_o we_o can_v pray_v in_o faith_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o all_o other_o virtue_n as_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n they_o will_v not_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n nor_o profitable_a to_o we_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o if_o god_n have_v give_v we_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n we_o ought_v to_o use_v his_o gift_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o to_o improve_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o his_o gift_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o eternal_a life_n let_v this_o be_v our_o daily_a study_n and_o constant_a care_n to_o enrich_v our_o soul_n with_o true_a save_a grace_n and_o then_o the_o devil_n can_v so_o easy_o undermine_v we_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o watchful_a over_o our_o way_n that_o no_o iniquity_n shall_v cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n for_o if_o the_o devil_n can_v fasten_v any_o one_o sin_n upon_o we_o he_o will_v soon_o link_v another_o sin_n to_o that_o and_o will_v draw_v we_o on_o from_o sin_n to_o sin_n until_o they_o make_v a_o strong_a chain_n which_o will_v pull_v we_o down_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o destruction_n unless_o we_o break_v every_o link_n of_o this_o chain_n with_o true_a repentance_n also_o if_o we_o be_v thus_o watchful_a it_o will_v keep_v we_o from_o security_n and_o from_o presume_v upon_o our_o own_o strength_n in_o time_n or_o place_n of_o danger_n 37._o danger_n psa_fw-la 119._o 37._o and_o we_o shall_v turn_v our_o eye_n from_o behold_v vanity_n and_o refuse_v the_o false_a favour_n which_o the_o world_n do_v promise_v we_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n will_v be_v always_o before_o our_o eye_n and_o then_o we_o may_v be_v confident_a 11_o confident_a psa_fw-la 91._o 11_o that_o god_n will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o we_o to_o keep_v we_o in_o all_o our_o way_n lest_o at_o any_o time_n we_o dash_v our_o foot_n against_o a_o stone_n or_o lest_o we_o stumble_v at_o those_o block_n which_o the_o devil_n lay_v in_o our_o way_n 41._o way_n mat._n 26._o 41._o christ_n have_v command_v we_o to_o watch_v and_o pray_v that_o we_o enter_v not_o into_o temptation_n 13._o temptation_n eph._n 6._o 13._o and_o he_o have_v give_v we_o spiritual_a armour_n and_o weapon_n of_o defence_n which_o we_o must_v take_v unto_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o resist_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n let_v we_o learn_v 5._o learn_v psa_fw-la 58._o 5._o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o serpent_n by_o stop_v our_o ear_n against_o their_o charm_a persuasion_n and_o by_o suspect_v most_o their_o malicious_a attempt_n when_o with_o great_a show_n of_o love_n they_o smile_v and_o fawn_v upon_o we_o we_o must_v now_o consider_v by_o the_o example_n of_o judas_n that_o unless_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v accompany_v the_o use_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a ordinance_n we_o may_v outward_o partake_v of_o they_o but_o we_o shall_v not_o inward_o be_v edify_v by_o they_o neither_o shall_v we_o find_v any_o spiritual_a consolation_n in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o because_o there_o be_v no_o efficacious_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n the_o outward_a man_n may_v be_v affect_v for_o the_o present_a but_o the_o inward_a man_n can_v be_v edify_v for_o there_o will_v be_v no_o illumination_n wrought_v in_o the_o understanding_n to_o conceive_v right_o of_o heavenly_a thing_n no_o true_a conformity_n in_o the_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n no_o holy_a zeal_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o no_o pious_a reformation_n will_v be_v wrought_v in_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n 2._o conversation_n 2_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 2._o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n all_o man_n do_v not_o profit_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o all_o man_n be_v not_o edify_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o may_v join_v with_o the_o congregation_n in_o hear_v in_o pray_v in_o sing_v of_o psalm_n some_o shall_v receive_v comfort_n and_o instruction_n other_o shall_v receive_v no_o benefit_n thereby_o we_o may_v also_o partake_v with_o they_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o we_o may_v feed_v our_o body_n with_o the_o outward_a element_n in_o that_o sacrament_n but_o we_o shall_v never_o feed_v and_o nourish_v our_o soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n with_o that_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o except_o our_o heart_n be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v it_o through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o we_o can_v eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o faith_n our_o soul_n may_v languish_v and_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o heavenly_a food_n and_o nourishment_n if_o the_o milk_n of_o god_n word_n and_o this_o spiritual_a food_n
prophecy_n be_v then_o fulfil_v that_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o in_o his_o life_n 46._o life_n luk._n 23._o 46._o then_o he_o commend_v his_o spirit_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n as_o this_o lamb_n of_o god_n live_v in_o perfect_a innocency_n so_o he_o die_v in_o perfect_a meekness_n then_o present_o after_o 34_o after_o joh._n 19_o 34_o one_o of_o the_o soldier_n pierce_v his_o side_n with_o a_o spear_n to_o his_o very_a heart_n and_o forthwith_o c●me_v thereout_o blood_n and_o water_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 10._o fulfil_v zech._n 12_o 10._o they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o pierce_v this_o be_v also_o do_v that_o we_o may_v faithful_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o death_n this_o be_v a_o special_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o we_o must_v steadfast_o believe_v if_o we_o will_v have_v comfort_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o true_o dye_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n have_v not_o be_v full_o satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n we_o can_v have_v have_v no_o power_n to_o die_v unto_o sin_n or_o to_o mortify_v our_o corruption_n and_o sinful_a lust_n and_o death_n will_v be_v most_o bitter_a fearful_a and_o terrible_a to_o we_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o dye_v and_o rise_v again_o how_o can_v death_n have_v be_v destroy_v how_o can_v the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v take_v out_o who_o shall_v have_v sanctify_v death_n unto_o we_o and_o how_o can_v we_o be_v willing_a to_o embrace_v it_o wherefore_o if_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o die_v for_o we_o it_o will_v minister_v much_o matter_n of_o exceed_v great_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o our_o dissolution_n from_o the_o former_a consideration_n we_o may_v draw_v much_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o first_o it_o do_v evident_o appear_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v assume_v to_o his_o deity_n our_o whole_a nature_n soul_n and_o body_n which_o do_v still_o retain_v all_o the_o property_n of_o humane_a nature_n unconfound_v with_o his_o deity_n 17_o deity_n heb._n 2._o 17_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 25._o thing_n heb_fw-mi 4._o 25._o sin_n only_o except_v his_o soul_n be_v sensible_a of_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n his_o body_n do_v feel_v the_o smart_n of_o pain_n he_o be_v subject_a to_o all_o our_o natural_a passion_n and_o infirmity_n which_o may_v be_v without_o sin_n he_o be_v sensible_a of_o hunger_n thirst_n weariness_n and_o the_o like_a he_o be_v also_o subject_a to_o mortality_n though_o not_o to_o corruption_n for_o 10_o for_o psal_n 16._o 10_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n because_o he_o have_v no_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n in_o he_o and_o there_o be_v a_o true_a dissolution_n of_o his_o soul_n from_o his_o body_n when_o he_o die_v if_o christ_n have_v not_o assume_v our_o whole_a nature_n he_o can_v not_o have_v perfect_o save_v and_o redeem_v we_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o then_o the_o work_n which_o god_n send_v he_o to_o do_v have_v not_o be_v finish_v but_o we_o have_v still_o remain_v in_o our_o sin_n 10_o heb._n 10._o 10_o but_o the_o whole_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v full_o wrought_v by_o that_o which_o he_o suffer_v both_o in_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o his_o body_n to_o give_v we_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n here_o and_o save_v from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n hereafter_o second_o we_o may_v learn_v from_o thence_o this_o instruction_n so_o to_o regulate_v our_o thirsty_a desire_n that_o they_o may_v be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o not_o for_o own_o sinful_a end_n if_o we_o thirst_v after_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n for_o any_o other_o end_n than_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n our_o thirst_n be_v sinful_a and_o it_o will_v be_v satisfy_v with_o vinegar_n or_o gall_n and_o if_o we_o thirst_v after_o blood_n rapine_n or_o revenge_n the_o end_n of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a thirsty_a desire_n will_v be_v the_o death_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o if_o our_o thirst_n be_v holy_a and_o heavenly_a we_o shall_v then_o have_v thirsty_a desire_n and_o holy_a endeavour_n 613._o endeavour_n isal_n 613._o how_o to_o enjoy_v god_n and_o to_o do_v his_o will_n how_o to_o preserve_v our_o neighbour_n safety_n and_o how_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o undefiled_a and_o if_o we_o can_v say_v as_o david_n do_v 6._o do_v psal_n 143._o 6._o my_o soul_n thirst_v after_o thou_o o_o lord_n as_o a_o thirsty_a land_n then_o our_o thirst_n shall_v be_v quench_v and_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v refresh_v with_o the_o sweet_a comfort_n of_o god_n also_o if_o we_o thirst_v after_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a honour_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o after_o grace_n and_o godliness_n which_o be_v the_o true_a riches_n of_o the_o soul_n then_o christ_n will_v be_v a_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n to_o we_o which_o only_o can_v quench_v our_o spiritual_a 10._o o_o joh._n 4._o 10._o thirst_n and_o refresh_v our_o pant_a soul_n and_o it_o shall_v spring_v up_o in_o we_o to_o everlasting_a life_n christ_n call_v every_o one_o to_o drink_v of_o this_o water_n 37_o water_n john_n 7._o 37_o be_v any_o man_n thirst_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o drink_n thus_o say_v the_o prophet_n 1._o prophet_n isa_n 55._o 1._o ho_o every_o one_o that_o thirst_v come_v you_o to_o the_o water_n and_o you_o that_o have_v no_o silver_n come_v buy_v and_o eat_v come_v i_o say_v buy_v wine_n and_o milk_n without_o silver_n and_o without_o money_n here_o christ_n offer_v himself_o and_o his_o grace_n free_o but_o to_o who_o it_o be_v only_o to_o such_o as_o have_v a_o spiritual_a thirst_n after_o he_o wherefore_o if_o this_o be_v the_o thirst_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o enjoy_v christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v we_o shall_v see_v such_o a_o fountain_n of_o water_n of_o life_n flow_v out_o of_o his_o bless_a fide_fw-la as_o will_v purify_v our_o heart_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o cleanse_v our_o conscience_n from_o all_o iniquity_n whereby_o our_o thirsty_a soul_n will_v be_v more_o comfort_v and_o refresh_v than_o our_o body_n can_v be_v by_o any_o fountain_n of_o water_n in_o our_o natural_a thirst_n 42._o thirst_n psal_n 42._o this_o holy_a thirst_n make_v david_n soul_n pant_v more_o after_o god_n than_o the_o hart_n pant_v after_o the_o water-brook_n three_o from_o this_o consideration_n that_o christ_n have_v vinegar_n give_v he_o in_o a_o sponge_n we_o may_v learn_v this_o profitable_a doctrine_n that_o there_o be_v no_o content_n nor_o stability_n in_o any_o earthly_a thing_n for_o though_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o the_o contentment_n that_o the_o world_n can_v give_v we_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o satisfy_v our_o desire_n something_o will_v be_v want_v and_o we_o shall_v still_o thirst_v after_o more_o and_o we_o shall_v find_v soureness_n and_o bitterness_n in_o the_o best_a of_o earthly_a thing_n also_o that_o which_o we_o do_v possess_v we_o have_v it_o but_o in_o a_o sponge_n a_o sudden_a casualty_n by_o fire_n or_o water_n a_o word_n speak_v against_o king_n or_o state_n will_v wring_v it_o out_o a_o little_a pain_n or_o sickness_n a_o little_a trouble_n or_o sorrow_n will_v soon_o blast_n the_o comfort_n of_o of_o it_o and_o make_v it_o like_o vinegar_n to_o our_o taste_n if_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o nothing_o to_o embitter_v or_o blast_v our_o earthly_a joy_n yet_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v transitory_a and_o unstable_a 1._o unstable_a eccl._n 12._o 1._o and_o when_o old_a age_n come_v we_o shall_v take_v no_o pleasure_n in_o they_o and_o death_n will_v quite_o bereave_v we_o of_o they_o all_o now_o than_o if_o we_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o these_o vain_a thing_n they_o will_v deceive_v and_o will_v give_v we_o no_o solid_a comfort_n except_o we_o do_v enjoy_v they_o in_o christ_n for_o without_o he_o the_o best_a of_o all_o earthly_a blessing_n be_v but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n wherefore_o let_v this_o be_v our_o great_a care_n our_o chief_a joy_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o enjoy_v christ_n to_o be_v join_v unto_o he_o with_o the_o bond_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o than_o whatsoever_o our_o estate_n or_o condition_n be_v we_o shall_v find_v comfort_n in_o it_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n we_o shall_v glorify_v god_n with_o it_o and_o if_o we_o do_v casual_o lose_v it_o we_o shall_v lose_v nothing_o by_o it_o for_o we_o shall_v still_o enjoy_v christ_n who_o will_v abundant_o recompense_v our_o earthly_a loss_n with_o spiritual_a comfort_n here_o and_o with_o a_o eternal_a
life_n though_o the_o soul_n be_v thus_o high_o to_o be_v prize_v and_o far_o excel_v the_o body_n in_o worth_n and_o dignity_n yet_o natural_a man_n will_v pamper_v and_o garnish_v out_o the_o body_n which_o be_v every_o day_n subject_a to_o corruption_n and_o change_n but_o they_o suffer_v their_o soul_n to_o starve_v for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a food_n and_o to_o go_v naked_a for_o want_v of_o spiritual_a clothing_n whereby_o they_o be_v expose_v to_o the_o venomous_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o their_o sinful_a lust_n their_o soul_n have_v no_o spiritual_a light_n to_o foresee_v danger_n and_o to_o shun_v they_o they_o have_v no_o heavenly_a grace_n to_o resist_v the_o temptation_n and_o allurement_n of_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n but_o what_o the_o eye_n or_o the_o ear_n let_v in_o be_v willing_o receive_v thus_o their_o soul_n be_v pollute_v and_o unclean_a and_o death_n do_v snatch_v they_o away_o because_o they_o can_v willing_o deliver_v they_o up_o for_o they_o have_v no_o faith_n to_o believe_v and_o no_o assurance_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o god_n will_v receive_v their_o soul_n when_o they_o be_v part_v from_o their_o body_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o nature_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v in_o this_o condition_n god_n will_v not_o receive_v they_o and_o then_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o prey_n to_o the_o devil_n 4._o devil_n psal_n 103_o 4._o but_o christ_n have_v redeem_v our_o soul_n from_o destruction_n 20._o destruction_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 20._o he_o have_v buy_v we_o with_o a_o great_a price_n he_o have_v shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n wherefore_o god_n may_v just_o claim_v our_o whole_a man_n both_o soul_n and_o body_n as_o his_o due_n by_o a_o treble_a right_n by_o the_o right_n of_o creation_n of_o donation_n and_o of_o purchase_n 28_o purchase_n act._n 17._o 28_o for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v 7_o be_v 1_o cor._n 4._o 7_o what_o have_v we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o receive_v from_o god_n what_o shall_v we_o bequeath_v unto_o he_o in_o thankfulness_n for_o all_o his_o benefit_n to_o we_o we_o can_v do_v no_o less_o than_o devote_v ourselves_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o service_n while_o we_o live_v here_o and_o when_o this_o life_n shall_v be_v end_v to_o bequeath_v our_o precious_a soul_n unto_o he_o purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v too_o pure_a that_o be_v present_v to_o he_o and_o nothing_o can_v be_v too_o dear_a and_o precious_a for_o he_o if_o we_o bequeath_v this_o precious_a legacy_n to_o god_n in_o our_o life-time_n than_o he_o will_v require_v it_o as_o of_o right_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o will_v receive_v it_o from_o we_o at_o our_o death_n this_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o death_n to_o we_o which_o will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o this_o will_v make_v we_o willing_a to_o leave_v this_o world_n and_o desire_v with_o paul_n to_o be_v dissolve_v because_o we_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v with_o christ_n but_o if_o we_o give_v ourselves_o to_o worldly_a vanity_n to_o lewd_a and_o licentious_a live_n and_o not_o to_o the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v then_o be_v unwilling_a to_o part_v with_o this_o life_n or_o to_o look_v upon_o death_n when_o it_o come_v because_o we_o know_v not_o to_o who_o it_o will_v deliver_v our_o poor_a soul_n for_o we_o can_v comfortable_o commend_v they_o to_o god_n when_o we_o die_v with_o any_o hope_n or_o good_a assurance_n that_o he_o will_v receive_v they_o see_v they_o do_v god_n no_o service_n while_o we_o live_v what_o thankfulness_n be_v it_o then_o to_o commend_v our_o soul_n unto_o god_n when_o we_o can_v keep_v they_o no_o long_o for_o the_o world_n or_o for_o our_o sinful_a delight_n and_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o have_v at_o our_o death_n if_o we_o have_v no_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v all_o happiness_n with_o christ_n but_o rather_o just_a cause_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o our_o life_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o everlasting_a torment_n after_o death_n it_o may_v sometime_o fall_v out_o that_o we_o shall_v neither_o have_v time_n nor_o ability_n to_o dispose_v of_o our_o soul_n when_o we_o die_v as_o we_o desire_v and_o as_o we_o ought_v for_o if_o death_n come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o by_o any_o casualty_n or_o otherwise_o we_o have_v then_o no_o time_n to_o commit_v our_o soul_n unto_o god_n protection_n or_o if_o we_o be_v take_v away_o by_o some_o violent_a or_o malignant_a disease_n which_o do_v distemper_v our_o sense_n and_o weaken_v our_o understanding_n and_o reason_n that_o we_o be_v unfit_a for_o this_o great_a work_n we_o have_v then_o no_o ability_n to_o resign_v up_o our_o spirit_n unto_o god_n in_o a_o holy_a way_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o where_o be_v our_o comfort_n in_o death_n this_o need_v not_o trouble_v our_o thought_n if_o we_o have_v former_o in_o our_o life_n have_v any_o holy_a assurance_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o his_o righteousness_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o his_o sanctification_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o we_o have_v live_v virtuous_o and_o pious_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o have_v serve_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n with_o a_o perfect_a and_o upright_a heart_n in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o life_n for_o then_o death_n can_v come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o and_o no_o extremity_n of_o sickness_n or_o pain_n can_v separate_v we_o from_o christ_n nor_o take_v away_o our_o comfort_n from_o our_o soul_n at_o our_o death_n because_o god_n will_v receive_v they_o up_o into_o his_o holy_a habitation_n to_o abide_v and_o dwell_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o though_o we_o have_v neither_o time_n nor_o ability_n to_o commend_v they_o unto_o he_o last_o let_v we_o zealous_o meditate_v for_o our_o great_a comfort_n upon_o the_o blood_n and_o water_n that_o gush_v out_o from_o our_o saviour_n heart_n after_o he_o be_v dead_a when_o his_o side_n be_v pierce_v with_o the_o spear_n there_o be_v blood_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o there_o be_v water_n to_o wash_v away_o the_o stain_n of_o sin_n for_o our_o sanctification_n for_o as_o our_o sin_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o as_o our_o surety_n so_o by_o faith_n his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o god_n do_v account_v we_o just_o and_o righteous_a in_o his_o sight_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n so_o likewise_o by_o grace_n we_o be_v renew_v daily_o and_o sanctify_a in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v raise_v up_o our_o thought_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o this_o sanctify_a water_n when_o we_o think_v upon_o our_o baptism_n or_o see_v that_o sacrament_n celebrate_v that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v sprinkle_v with_o it_o by_o faith_n to_o purify_v our_o soul_n from_o the_o leprosy_n and_o spot_n of_o our_o sin_n also_o we_o must_v set_v the_o cogitation_n of_o our_o heart_n upon_o this_o sacred_a blood_n when_o we_o feed_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n that_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n do_v shed_v his_o blood_n and_o be_v crucify_v for_o we_o consider_v also_o that_o though_o the_o body_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n be_v miserable_o rend_v and_o tear_v by_o the_o cruelty_n of_o his_o enemy_n yet_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 20_o david_n psal_n 34._o 20_o he_o keep_v all_o his_o bone_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v break_v and_o though_o they_o break_v the_o bone_n of_o the_o two_o malefactor_n that_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o yet_o they_o break_v not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 12._o fulfil_v num._n 9_o 12._o that_o not_o a_o bone_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v break_v god_n so_o restrain_v his_o bloody_a enemy_n that_o they_o can_v do_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v decree_v and_o what_o christ_n be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v for_o he_o do_v not_o yield_v to_o their_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n but_o only_o in_o obedience_n to_o his_o father_n will_n for_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o confound_v all_o his_o tormentor_n but_o how_o then_o shall_v our_o redemption_n be_v wrought_v how_o shall_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v and_o how_o
true_a believer_n have_v by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n above_o all_o other_o man_n that_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o examine_v thyself_o hereby_o what_o thou_o have_v gain_v by_o he_o if_o thou_o have_v use_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n and_o his_o good_a creature_n sober_o and_o temperate_o to_o his_o glory_n and_o not_o to_o pamper_v or_o cherish_v any_o sin_n to_o dishonour_v he_o thereby_o and_o do_v return_v thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o they_o with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n because_o he_o be_v the_o sole_a giver_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o thou_o injoye_v then_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v upon_o they_o and_o have_v make_v they_o blessing_n to_o thou_o which_o thou_o may_v free_o use_v to_o thy_o comfort_n otherwise_o thou_o can_v find_v little_a comfort_n in_o they_o also_o if_o thou_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o thy_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o christ_n and_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n hereof_o by_o the_o daily_o renew_v of_o thy_o repentance_n for_o thy_o daily_a sin_n then_o thou_o may_v be_v full_o persuade_v that_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o burden_n to_o thy_o conscience_n and_o do_v cleave_v close_o to_o thy_o soul_n be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o christ_n have_v nail_v it_o to_o his_o cross_n whereby_o thou_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o from_o the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n this_o consideration_n will_v much_o comfort_v thou_o when_o thou_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n that_o be_v in_o thy_o affliction_n be_v take_v away_o it_o be_v part_n of_o the_o curse_n and_o thou_o be_v but_o chastise_v for_o thy_o good_a and_o not_o punish_v for_o thy_o hurt_n examine_v thyself_o yet_o further_o what_o thou_o have_v gain_v by_o christ_n for_o if_o thou_o can_v overpower_v thy_o corruption_n by_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n and_o can_v leave_v thy_o sin_n before_o they_o leave_v thou_o and_o that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o be_v bitter_a to_o thy_o soul_n and_o do_v daily_o strive_v with_o a_o true_a purpose_n of_o heart_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n then_o thou_o have_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n in_o thou_o 25._o thou_o ezek._n 36._o 25._o and_o have_v pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o thy_o soul_n to_o purify_v &_o cleanse_v thou_o from_o all_o thy_o filthiness_n also_o if_o thou_o do_v find_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n that_o thou_o have_v a_o holy_a desire_n to_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o faithful_a endeavour_n to_o grow_v strong_a in_o grace_n that_o thy_o heart_n may_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o thy_o faith_n firm_a to_o uphold_v thou_o in_o thy_o suffering_n and_o trial_n then_o thou_o have_v get_v great_a gain_n and_o much_o advantage_n by_o christ_n but_o if_o thou_o be_v persuade_v of_o thy_o adoption_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o thou_o can_v not_o conceive_v how_o great_a thy_o gain_n will_v be_v for_o whatsoever_o a_o child_n can_v desire_v of_o a_o love_a father_n thou_o may_v expect_v much_o more_o from_o god_n nothing_o shall_v be_v too_o dear_a for_o thou_o nothing_o shall_v be_v hurtful_a to_o thou_o and_o nothing_o shall_v be_v conceal_v from_o thou_o that_o may_v be_v profitable_a and_o advantageous_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o thy_o soul_n let_v we_o consider_v now_o that_o our_o heart_n may_v ruminate_v well_o upon_o it_o for_o our_o great_a comfort_n what_o honour_n we_o have_v by_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 23._o god_n 1_o sam._n 18._o 23._o when_o saul_n servant_n come_v to_o persuade_v david_n to_o be_v the_o king_n son_n in_o law_n he_o give_v they_o this_o answer_n seem_v it_o to_o you_o a_o light_a thing_n to_o be_v a_o king_n son_n in_o law_n see_v that_o i_o be_o a_o poor_a man_n and_o light_o esteem_v how_o great_a then_o be_v the_o honour_n and_o how_o high_o to_o be_v esteem_v for_o a_o poor_a wretched_a captive_a to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o the_o eternal_a and_o everliving_a god_n to_o have_v such_o a_o father_n to_o come_v to_o in_o all_o our_o necessity_n such_o a_o refuge_n in_o all_o our_o distress_n such_o a_o protector_n against_o all_o our_o enemy_n and_o to_o be_v heir_n to_o such_o a_o inheritance_n as_o be_v incorruptible_a and_o eternal_a which_o christ_n have_v reserve_v for_o we_o in_o heaven_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o undefiled_a in_o our_o conversation_n as_o become_v the_o son_n of_o such_o a_o father_n we_o shall_v not_o walk_v stubborn_o before_o he_o but_o in_o filial_a fear_n and_o reverence_n obey_v his_o holy_a will_n and_o command_n with_o filial_a love_n and_o submit_v to_o his_o rod_n and_o correction_n as_o a_o child_n ought_v to_o submit_v to_o his_o father_n if_o our_o service_n be_v thus_o perform_v to_o god_n he_o will_v then_o be_v a_o tender_a and_o a_o gracious_a father_n to_o we_o if_o we_o have_v this_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n what_o be_v the_o gain_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o it_o what_o be_v all_o earthly_a honour_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o a_o true_a christian_n and_o yet_o most_o man_n covet_v and_o desire_v that_o gain_n and_o that_o honour_n and_o they_o neglect_v the_o true_a gain_n and_o the_o true_a honour_n of_o a_o christian_a which_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v desire_v 26_o desire_v mat._n 16._o 26_o what_o be_v a_o man_n profit_v say_v christ_n if_o be_v shall_v gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n if_o we_o enjoy_v christ_n we_o have_v a_o rich_a patrimony_n we_o can_v want_v no_o comfort_n whatsoever_o shall_v betide_v we_o in_o soul_n or_o in_o body_n in_o good_n or_o good_a name_n he_o will_v repair_v all_o our_o loss_n in_o adam_n with_o his_o abundant_a righteousness_n he_o will_v also_o repair_v all_o our_o loss_n in_o child_n servant_n or_o estate_n either_o in_o this_o life_n 10_o life_n job_n 42_o 10_o as_o he_o do_v unto_o job_n or_o else_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v in_o a_o more_o plentiful_a manner_n christ_n will_v likewise_o furnish_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a ability_n to_o encounter_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o stand_v firm_o for_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o to_o endure_v the_o trial_n of_o our_o faith_n love_n hope_v and_o patience_n and_o he_o will_v make_v perfect_a whatsoever_o be_v want_v or_o imperfect_a in_o we_o 9_o we_o 2_o cor._n 12._o 9_o for_o his_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o and_o his_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o weakness_n his_o love_n and_o his_o care_n of_o we_o do_v most_o shine_v forth_o when_o we_o do_v most_o a_o base_a and_o humble_a ourselves_o and_o when_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v our_o unworthiness_n of_o it_o in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o shall_v meditate_v with_o all_o thankfulness_n upon_o the_o great_a benefit_n that_o we_o have_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o christ_n have_v seal_v for_o we_o with_o his_o blood_n for_o we_o may_v faithful_o believe_v and_o comfortable_o expect_v that_o god_n will_v perform_v his_o condition_n express_v therein_o to_o we_o though_o we_o can_v perfect_o perform_v our_o condition_n to_o he_o also_o that_o he_o will_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o our_o filthiness_n 40._o filthiness_n jer._n 32._o 40._o and_o will_v put_v his_o fear_n in_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o wherefore_o let_v not_o the_o fail_n and_o frailty_n of_o the_o flesh_n discomfort_v we_o nor_o weaken_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n for_o the_o flesh_n will_v rebel_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n will_v sometime_o break_v out_o upon_o we_o to_o dash_v and_o hinder_v our_o comfort_n in_o this_o gracious_a covenant_n therefore_o christ_n have_v ordain_v the_o two_o sacrament_n to_o seal_v this_o covenant_n to_o our_o soul_n for_o the_o better_a confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n 27._o faith_n gal._n 3._o 26_o 27._o for_o if_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o christ_n by_o faith_n we_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o church_n and_o this_o covenant_n be_v seal_v to_o we_o 7_o we_o 1_o john_n 1._o 7_o and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n if_o age_n or_o sickness_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o beside_o sanctify_a grace_n do_v keep_v we_o from_o sin_v against_o god_n this_o be_v not_o the_o true_a purge_n away_o of_o sin_n nor_o the_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o the_o evil_a concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o sinful_a desire_n of_o the_o mind_n will_v remain_v strong_a and_o
cor._n 1._o 3._o who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 12._o prophet_n isa_n 51._o 11_o 12._o the_o redeem_v of_o the_o lord_n shall_v return_v and_o come_v with_o sing_v unto_o zion_n and_o everlasting_a joy_n shall_v be_v upon_o their_o head_n they_o shall_v obtain_v gladn●sse_n and_o joy_n and_o mourning_n shall_v flee_v away_o i_o even_o i_o be_o he_o that_o comfort_v you_o what_o comfort_n can_v we_o then_o want_v if_o god_n be_v our_o comforter_n second_o if_o we_o delight_v in_o pleasure_n heaven_n will_v afford_v we_o more_o than_o our_o heart_n can_v desire_v 9_o desire_v psal_n 36._o 8_o 9_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v abundant_o satisfy_v with_o the_o fatness_n of_o god_n house_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o drink_v of_o the_o river_n of_o his_o pleasure_n for_o with_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o life_n in_o his_o light_n shall_v we_o see_v light_a also_o the_o psalmist_n say_v thus_o 11_o thus_o psal_n 16._o 11_o god_n will_v show_v we_o the_o path_n of_o life_n in_o his_o presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n at_o his_o right_a hand_n there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o for_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n of_o all_o peace_n and_o comfort_n of_o all_o joy_n and_o happiness_n and_o of_o all_o glory_n and_o immortality_n three_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n of_o all_o security_n as_o abraham_n say_v to_o dives_n 26_o dives_n lu._n 16._o 26_o between_o we_o and_o you_o there_o be_v a_o great_a gulf_n fix_v so_o that_o they_o which_o will_v pass_v from_o hence_o to_o you_o can_v neither_o can_v they_o ●asse_v to_o we_o that_o will_v come_v from_o thence_o also_o th●●_n say_v christ_n 10._o christ_n mat._n 25._o 10._o when_o the_o brid●groom_n come_v and_o they_o that_o be_v ready_a be_v go_v in_o with_o he_o to_o the_o marriage_n the_o door_n will_v be_v shut_v and_o the●_n none_o can_v go_v in_o and_o none_o can_v come_v out_o 20_o out_o mat._n 6._o 20_o ●n_a heaven_n we_o may_v safe_o keep_v our_o spiritual_a treasure_n from_o the_o moth_n and_o rust_n and_o from_o that_o arch_a thief_n the_o devil_n if_o this_o precious_a jewel_n which_o be_v our_o ●ou●_n be_v lay_v up_o in_o heaven_n it_o will_v be_v safe_o keep_v there_o for_o nothing_o can_v corrupt_v it_o and_o no_o thief_n can_v steal_v it_o away_o last_o that_o which_o make_v up_o the_o fullness_n of_o our_o joy_n and_o happiness_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o eternity_n of_o it_o for_o if_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v it_o but_o for_o a_o time_n it_o will_v great_o lessen_v the_o comfort_n of_o our_o felicity_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o end_n of_o time_n but_o there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o our_o bless_a condition_n in_o heaven_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 18._o lord_n isa_n 65._o 17_o 18._o behold_v i_o create_v new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n and_o the_o former_a shall_v not_o be_v remember_v nor_o come_v into_o mind_n but_o be_v you_o glad_a and_o rejoice_v for_o ever_o in_o that_o which_o i_o create_v for_o behold_v i_o create_v jerusalem_n a_o rejoice_n and_o her_o people_n a_o joy_n and_o again_o he_o say_v by_o the_o same_o prophet_n 22_o prophet_n isa_n 66_o 22_o for_o as_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n which_o i_o will_v make_v shall_v remain_v b●fore_o i_o so_o shall_v your_o seed_n and_o your_o name_n remain_v thus_o say_v john_n 5._o john_n rev._n 2_o 2._o 5._o the_o servant_n of_o the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v in_o this_o city_n of_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n say_v thus_o 17_o thus_o 1_o thes_n 4._o 17_o then_o we_o which_o be_v alive_a and_o remain_v shall_v be_v catch_v up_o together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o shall_v we_o ever_o be_v with_o the_o lord_n daniel_n also_o say_v thus_o 18._o thus_o dan._n 7._o 18._o and_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n shall_v take_v the_o kingdom_n and_o possess_v it_o for_o ever_o even_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o holy_a david_n say_v 18_o say_v psal_n 37._o 18_o that_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o upright_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o thus_o it_o be_v evident_a how_o great_a our_o gain_n shall_v be_v by_o christ_n after_o death_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n of_o our_o happiness_n consider_v now_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o suffer_v in_o this_o life_n be_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n and_o that_o the_o bitterness_n of_o our_o sorrow_n be_v sweeten_v with_o some_o comfort_n also_o that_o our_o joy_n and_o felicity_n in_o heaven_n be_v for_o eternity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n embitter_v with_o any_o trouble_n or_o vexation_n that_o we_o may_v patient_o and_o meek_o bear_v whatsoever_o god_n shall_v lay_v upon_o we_o and_o earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v unclothe_v of_o this_o corruptible_a body_n that_o we_o may_v put_v on_o the_o glorious_a robe_n of_o immortality_n for_o ever_o thus_o say_v paul_n 17_o paul_n ●_o cor._n 4._o 17_o our_o light_a affliction_n which_o be_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n work_v for_o we_o a_o far_o more_o exceed_a and_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o consider_v and_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v this_o gain_n and_o advantage_n only_o by_o christ_n it_o will_v make_v we_o study_v and_o labour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o enjoy_v he_o and_o when_o we_o have_v get_v some_o interest_n in_o he_o to_o stick_v close_o to_o he_o by_o faith_n to_o love_v he_o with_o entire_a affection_n and_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o his_o will_n and_o command_n wherefore_o now_o if_o thou_o have_v any_o holy_a desire_n to_o be_v free_v from_o all_o temptation_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o from_o all_o sorrow_n vexation_n and_o calamity_n then_o set_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o the_o fruition_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n where_o thou_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o these_o evil_n though_o here_o upon_o earth_n they_o will_v rush_v in_o upon_o thou_o also_o if_o thou_o desire_v to_o enjoy_v all_o the_o happiness_n that_o heaven_n can_v afford_v thou_o and_o to_o enjoy_v god_n himself_o for_o ever_o then_o look_v up_o unto_o christ_n thy_o saviour_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n who_o have_v purchase_v heaven_n for_o thou_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o have_v make_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o adoption_n that_o he_o may_v bestow_v all_o this_o upon_o thou_o whereof_o he_o have_v give_v thou_o some_o taste_n in_o this_o life_n but_o thou_o can_v not_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o it_o until_o this_o life_n be_v end_v 10._o end_v 2_o pet._n 1._o 10._o give_v all_o diligence_n therefore_o as_o peter_n say_v to_o make_v thy_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a by_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o get_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n which_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v stamp_v upon_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o may_v carry_v it_o to_o thy_o grave_n and_o then_o death_n will_v give_v thy_o soul_n free_a passage_n into_o the_o mansion_n of_o heaven_n where_o this_o perfect_a freedom_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v and_o where_o this_o gain_n of_o eternal_a blessedness_n be_v to_o be_v get_v wherefore_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n live_v not_o as_o a_o citizen_n of_o this_o world_n but_o live_v here_o as_o a_o free_a denizen_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n have_v thy_o mind_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o thy_o heart_n set_v upon_o the_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n thereof_o that_o thy_o life_n and_o conversation_n may_v be_v pure_a and_o holy_a here_o upon_o earth_n and_o then_o thy_o soul_n shall_v live_v and_o eternal_o possess_v it_o after_o it_o be_v dissolve_v from_o thy_o body_n how_o christ_n be_v our_o spiritual_a life_n man_n in_o his_o first_o creation_n have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v free_a from_o any_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n but_o he_o soon_o lose_v it_o by_o his_o transgression_n and_o deface_v this_o lively_a image_n of_o god_n that_o be_v stamp_v upon_o his_o soul_n and_o then_o in_o himself_o he_o have_v no_o ability_n to_o recover_v his_o lose_a happiness_n this_o leprosy_n of_o sin_n have_v infect_v all_o his_o posterity_n that_o proceed_v from_o he_o by_o natural_a propagation_n which_o have_v bring_v upon_o they_o a_o spiritual_a death_n and_o lay_v they_o open_a to_o eternal_a death_n hereafter_o though_o this_o be_v our_o condition_n by_o nature_n yet_o 7._o yet_o eph._n 2._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o god_n who_o be_v rich_a in_o mercy_n for_o his_o great_a love_n where_o with_o he_o love_v we_o even_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n have_v quicken_v we_o together_o in_o
that_o dwell_v in_o love_n dwell_v in_o god_n and_o god_n in_o he_o wherefore_o by_o our_o love_n to_o our_o neighbour_n we_o may_v know_v what_o love_n dwell_v in_o we_o how_o we_o love_v god_n and_o whether_o god_n dwell_v in_o we_o if_o we_o be_v in_o this_o gracious_a condition_n that_o god_n have_v set_v his_o love_n upon_o we_o we_o can_v then_o lose_v this_o principal_a grace_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o god_n love_n to_o we_o and_o we_o can_v fall_v quite_o away_o from_o god_n because_o 30_o because_o eph._n 4._o 30_o we_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n into_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n the_o six_o reason_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v a_o strong_a reason_n so_o to_o establish_v our_o faith_n that_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v overthrow_v for_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n we_o be_v redeem_v out_o of_o the_o captivity_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n this_o be_v a_o infinite_a price_n which_o christ_n pay_v for_o our_o redemption_n whereby_o also_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o from_o the_o condemn_a power_n of_o sin_n because_o we_o be_v make_v one_o with_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o therefore_o we_o can_v be_v bring_v again_o under_o the_o same_o bondage_n and_o slavery_n or_o under_o the_o same_o curse_n or_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n which_o we_o shall_v be_v if_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n can_v be_v break_v than_o we_o shall_v have_v but_o little_a benefit_n by_o our_o redemption_n and_o christ_n have_v pay_v that_o great_a price_n for_o we_o to_o little_a purpose_n also_o we_o be_v not_o then_o perfect_o make_v free_a but_o be_v still_o the_o servant_n of_o sin_n but_o christ_n have_v finish_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n have_v make_v we_o free_a sin_n have_v therefore_o no_o more_o power_n over_o we_o and_o the_o devil_n can_v prevail_v against_o we_o to_o break_v that_o union_n which_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o we_o by_o faith_n wherefore_o this_o consideration_n will_v much_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n against_o all_o opposition_n and_o adversary_n power_n that_o if_o we_o be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n and_o make_v free_a by_o he_o our_o state_n and_o condition_n be_v firm_a and_o sure_a it_o can_v be_v remove_v for_o christ_n will_v loose_v none_o of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v buy_v with_o so_o great_a a_o price_n and_o make_v free_a by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o for_o who_o he_o have_v make_v intercession_n to_o his_o father_n if_o our_o faith_n shall_v fail_v than_o christ_n intercession_n for_o we_o must_v fail_v we_o shall_v then_o lose_v christ_n and_o all_o the_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o he_o we_o shall_v lose_v all_o true_a comfort_n in_o this_o life_n and_o eternal_a blessedness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v if_o we_o conceive_v thus_o mean_o of_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v blasphemy_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n the_o seven_o reason_n for_o the_o stability_n of_o faith_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o save_a grace_n which_o be_v in_o corruptible_a seed_n and_o plant_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o there_o be_v a_o new_a creation_n wrought_v in_o we_o for_o peter_n say_v 23_o say_v 1_o pet._n 1._o 23_o that_o we_o be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n but_o of_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o live_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o our_o first_o birth_n be_v of_o corruptible_a seed_n which_o be_v mortal_a and_o fade_v away_o like_o the_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n but_o our_o regeneration_n or_o second_o birth_n come_v from_o a_o immortal_a principle_n which_o can_v decay_v but_o continue_v for_o ever_o this_o birth_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o it_o have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o can_v never_o die_v though_o it_o may_v lie_v gasp_v for_o a_o time_n through_o some_o violent_a temptation_n or_o sore_a trial_n for_o if_o god_n begin_v to_o work_v a_o work_n of_o grace_n in_o we_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v it_o until_o it_o be_v finish_v from_o hence_o we_o may_v draw_v great_a consolation_n to_o ourselves_o in_o the_o apprehension_n that_o we_o be_v weak_a in_o grace_n for_o though_o we_o find_v but_o the_o beginning_n of_o our_o regeneration_n wrought_v in_o we_o god_n will_v not_o leave_v his_o own_o work_n imperfect_a though_o we_o can_v perform_v our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o god_n as_o we_o ought_v yet_o god_n will_v accept_v the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n in_o christ_n if_o it_o proceed_v from_o a_o faithful_a heart_n and_o though_o we_o find_v but_o some_o part_n of_o true_a repentance_n wrought_v in_o we_o as_o to_o our_o own_o apprehension_n god_n will_v go_v on_o in_o his_o work_n of_o reformation_n until_o there_o be_v a_o through_o change_v wrought_v both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o faith_n or_o any_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n be_v weak_a in_o we_o it_o will_v grow_v strong_a it_o will_v increase_v and_o continue_v because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v water_v his_o own_o seed_n which_o he_o have_v plant_v with_o his_o spiritual_a dew_n from_o above_o the_o last_o reason_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v this_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o where_o he_o do_v settle_v his_o habitation_n there_o he_o will_v abide_v for_o ever_o if_o our_o heart_n be_v purify_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o we_o be_v the_o spiritual_a temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v dwell_v there_o according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 16_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 16_o know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o thus_o say_v john_n 15._o john_n 1_o john_n 4_o 15._o whosoever_o shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v that_o true_a comforter_n who_o christ_n have_v send_v from_o the_o father_n to_o be_v with_o every_o member_n of_o his_o church_n to_o dwell_v with_o they_o to_o be_v in_o they_o and_o to_o abide_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o where_o he_o be_v there_o no_o grace_n can_v be_v want_v if_o we_o enjoy_v his_o comfortable_a society_n he_o will_v then_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n for_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n no_o erroneous_a doctrine_n shall_v infect_v our_o soul_n but_o we_o shall_v right_o understand_v the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o be_v able_a in_o some_o measure_n to_o walk_v in_o they_o he_o will_v protect_v we_o in_o all_o danger_n he_o will_v comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n he_o will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n against_o all_o assault_n and_o temptation_n and_o will_v give_v we_o strength_n of_o grace_n to_o hold_v out_o and_o persevere_v in_o all_o our_o trial_n unto_o the_o end_n wherefore_o grieve_v not_o this_o holy_a spirit_n by_o who_o we_o have_v so_o much_o comfort_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o by_o who_o we_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n who_o will_v confirm_v and_o establish_v we_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v continue_v steadfast_a until_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o our_o bless_a saviour_n jesus_n christ_n for_o ever_o in_o heaven_n the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o treatise_n now_o for_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o work_n i_o do_v earnest_o request_v every_o christian_a reader_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o serious_a consideration_n with_o himself_o which_o way_n the_o thought_n of_o his_o mind_n be_v chief_o bend_v and_o upon_o what_o he_o do_v set_v the_o meditation_n of_o his_o heart_n that_o he_o may_v know_v whether_o his_o way_n be_v steer_v towards_o heaven_n or_o not_o for_o they_o do_v ne●rest_v affect_v his_o soul_n and_o plain_o show_v what_o be_v his_o chief_a joy_n and_o delight_n if_o his_o thought_n be_v too_o much_o set_v upon_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n than_o his_o heart_n can_v be_v faithful_a towards_o god_n and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o place_n in_o his_o soul_n to_o receive_v that_o true_a comfort_n which_o otherwise_o he_o may_v have_v in_o the_o sweet_a fruition_n of_o god_n by_o his_o pious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n also_o if_o he_o delight_v to_o ruminate_v upon_o his_o carnal_a pleasure_n or_o upon_o any_o other_o evil_a concupiscence_n or_o to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n with_o approbation_n his_o former_a iniquity_n he_o do_v sin_n over_o again_o those_o former_a sin_n and_o do_v defile_v his_o precious_a soul_n with_o uncleanness_n and_o pollution_n
which_o god_n require_v folly_n 1_o rule_n of_o direction_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n 4_o holy_a meditation_n be_v the_o prerogative_n only_o of_o a_o true_a christian_a 9_o how_o dreadful_a it_o be_v to_o meditate_v on_o god_n 12_o how_o to_o meditate_v comfortable_o on_o god_n 20_o how_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 30_o how_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o work_v of_o god_n 48_o concern_v the_o creation_n of_o man._n 60_o to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n man_n be_v create_v 64_o concern_v the_o fall_n of_o man._n 69_o concern_v the_o redemption_n of_o man._n 73_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n 80_o the_o danger_n of_o delay_n in_o seek_v grace_n 92_o of_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n 97_o of_o christ_n prophetical_a office_n 106_o of_o christ_n priestly_a office_n 112_o of_o christ_n kingly_a office_n 116_o of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n 121_o of_o christ_n agony_n in_o the_o garden_n 128_o concern_v the_o fidelity_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o creachery_n of_o judas_n 141_o what_o christ_n suffer_v under_o caiaphas_n 157_o peter_n denial_n of_o christ_n 165_o christ_n suffering_n under_o pilate_n 179_o christ_n suffering_n under_o the_o cross_n 201_o who_o be_v the_o agent_n in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n 211_o of_o the_o penitent_a thief_n 214_o of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n 216_o the_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n 235_o of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 248_o what_o happen_v at_o christ_n death_n 255_o of_o the_o burial_n of_o christ_n 261_o a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o humiliation_n of_o christ_n 266_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 270_o of_o christ_n ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n 275_o a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o exaltation_n of_o christ_n 279_o our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n 282_o our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o death_n 290_o our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n after_o death_n 296_o how_o christ_n be_v our_o spiritual_a life_n 303_o how_o to_o enjoy_v true_a happiness_n 314_o concern_v our_o justification_n 318_o the_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n of_o true_a faith_n 322_o how_o to_o increase_n faith_n 329_o how_o to_o esteem_n of_o faith_n 333_o the_o sense_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v lose_v 341_o the_o stability_n of_o true_a faith_n 346_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o treatise_n 354_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o soul._n meditation_n be_v a_o duty_n which_o god_n require_v we_o read_v in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n that_o god_n command_v his_o people_n 9_o people_n deut._n 6._o 8_o 9_o to_o bind_v the_o word_n of_o his_o law_n for_o a_o sign_n upon_o their_o hand_n and_o to_o be_v as_o frontlet_n between_o their_o eye_n to_o write_v they_o upon_o the_o post_n of_o their_o house_n and_o on_o their_o gate_n to_o teach_v they_o diligent_o unto_o their_o child_n to_o talk_v of_o they_o in_o their_o house_n and_o to_o think_v upon_o they_o when_o they_o walk_v by_o the_o way_n when_o they_o lie_v down_o and_o when_o they_o rise_v up_o all_o which_o be_v to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n 18._o purpose_n deut._n 11_o 18._o that_o they_o may_v lay_v up_o his_o word_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o in_o their_o soul_n to_o meditate_v upon_o they_o for_o their_o instruction_n for_o their_o spiritual_a comfort_n and_o for_o their_o direction_n in_o a_o virtuous_a life_n and_o holy_a conversation_n this_o be_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o wiseman_n 3_o wiseman_n prov._n 7._o 3_o to_o bind_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n upon_o our_o finger_n and_o to_o write_v they_o upon_o the_o table_n of_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o may_v be_v familiar_o acquaint_v with_o they_o and_o to_o meditate_v on_o they_o upon_o all_o occasion_n paul_n give_v timothy_n diverse_a holy_a precept_n concern_v his_o life_n and_o doctrine_n 15_o doctrine_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 15_o and_o then_o he_o give_v he_o express_v charge_n to_o meditate_v upon_o they_o and_o to_o give_v himself_o whole_o to_o they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v well_o fasten_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o observe_v they_o also_o when_o moses_n be_v dead_a god_n make_v joshua_n the_o chief_a commander_n of_o his_o people_n and_o appoint_v he_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o to_o give_v they_o the_o possession_n of_o it_o which_o be_v a_o work_n so_o great_a so_o difficult_a and_o so_o dangerous_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a strength_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o land_n as_o may_v make_v joshua_n to_o shrink_v from_o it_o and_o afraid_a to_o undertake_v it_o but_o god_n do_v encourage_v he_o by_o many_o gracious_a promise_n of_o his_o assistance_n to_o make_v he_o able_a to_o effect_v it_o and_o therefore_o he_o command_v he_o three_o several_a time_n to_o be_v strong_a and_o of_o a_o good_a courage_n not_o to_o be_v afraid_a but_o to_o rest_v upon_o his_o word_n for_o strength_n and_o ability_n to_o do_v that_o work_n whereunto_o god_n have_v call_v he_o and_o will_v assure_o perform_v his_o word_n if_o he_o do_v observe_v to_o do_v according_a to_o all_o the_o law_n which_o moses_n command_v he_o and_o not_o turn_v from_o it_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a that_o he_o may_v prosper_v whithersoever_o he_o go_v wherefore_o god_n say_v thus_o unto_o he_o 8._o he_o josh_n 1._o 8._o this_o book_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n but_o thou_o shall_v meditate_v therein_o day_n and_o night_n that_o thou_o may_v observe_v to_o do_v according_a to_o all_o that_o be_v write_v therein_o for_o than_o thou_o shall_v make_v thy_o way_n prosperous_a and_o then_o thou_o shall_v have_v good_a success_n have_v not_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o be_v a_o holy_a duty_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v fix_v upon_o holy_a thing_n and_o perform_v to_o a_o holy_a end_n for_o it_o be_v very_o useful_a and_o profitable_a very_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a to_o every_o true_a believer_n soul_n if_o it_o be_v right_o perform_v the_o saint_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v be_v very_o frequent_a in_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o duty_n who_o heart_n be_v enlarge_v to_o meditate_v upon_o heavenly_a &_o spiritual_a thing_n &_o they_o do_v thereby_o draw_v true_a consolation_n to_o their_o soul_n 6_o soul_n psal_n 63._o 6_o this_o be_v holy_a david_n exercise_n day_n and_o night_n 119._o night_n psal_n 119._o sometime_o in_o the_o precept_n and_o statute_n of_o god_n 5._o god_n psal_n 143._o 5._o sometime_o on_o his_o wonderful_a act_n and_o excellent_a work_n 34_o work_n psal_n 104._o 34_o and_o his_o heart_n find_v great_a sweetness_n in_o these_o his_o meditation_n now_o than_o it_o be_v rich_o worth_a our_o pain_n to_o get_v this_o art_n of_o divine_a meditation_n for_o it_o will_v increase_v our_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o law_n it_o will_v make_v grace_n more_o fruitful_a in_o we_o and_o our_o sorrow_n less_o grievous_a it_o will_v also_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o make_v we_o stout_a and_o courageous_a in_o his_o cause_n to_o withstand_v the_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o the_o opposition_n of_o wicked_a man_n how_o can_v we_o be_v edify_v by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o we_o let_v it_o depart_v out_o of_o our_o mind_n and_o do_v not_o chew_v the_o cud_n and_o ruminate_v upon_o it_o in_o our_o heart_n how_o can_v we_o teach_v our_o child_n and_o servant_n the_o law_n of_o god_n if_o they_o come_v not_o frequent_o into_o our_o own_o meditation_n how_o can_v our_o way_n be_v prosperous_a here_o upon_o earth_n &_o how_o can_v we_o hope_v to_o have_v good_a success_n in_o what_o we_o take_v in_o hand_n if_o we_o do_v not_o meditate_v something_o concern_v god_n day_n and_o night_n if_o we_o neglect_v this_o pious_a duty_n we_o do_v then_o estrange_v ourselves_o from_o god_n and_o we_o bereave_v our_o soul_n of_o those_o spiritual_a benefit_n and_o comfort_n which_o otherwise_o they_o may_v receive_v and_o we_o lose_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o life_n but_o this_o art_n be_v not_o easy_o learn_v common_a grace_n or_o humane_a learning_n can_v attain_v unto_o it_o for_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n can_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o heavenly_a contemplation_n if_o they_o be_v not_o season_v with_o sanctify_a grace_n neither_o can_v they_o delight_v in_o spiritual_a thing_n if_o they_o be_v clog_v with_o earthly_a care_n or_o draw_v away_o after_o worldly_a vanity_n a_o true_a child_n of_o god_n be_v not_o always_o prepare_v to_o meditate_v as_o he_o ought_v to_o make_v his_o meditation_n edify_v and_o comfortable_a to_o his_o soul_n for_o the_o inward_a corruption_n of_o his_o unregenerate_a part_n will_v hinder_v he_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o worldly_a affair_n will_v distract_v his_o mind_n that_o he_o can_v
be_v so_o well_o dispose_v for_o such_o a_o heavenly_a duty_n or_o else_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o suggest_v unto_o he_o evil_a thought_n or_o to_o bring_v into_o his_o remembrance_n some_o of_o his_o former_a sin_n to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o his_o conscience_n to_o trouble_v the_o tranquillity_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o so_o to_o interrupt_v his_o thought_n that_o his_o meditation_n may_v not_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n nor_o yet_o fruitful_a and_o profitable_a to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v crave_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o prayer_n rule_n of_o direction_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n wherefore_o now_o that_o our_o meditation_n may_v be_v holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o that_o we_o may_v find_v sweetness_n and_o comfort_n in_o they_o we_o must_v careful_o observe_v these_o few_o direction_n follow_v the_o first_o be_v to_o fix_v our_o meditation_n upon_o holy_a thing_n and_o not_o upon_o that_o which_o be_v vain_a and_o unprofitable_a for_o they_o do_v most_o conduce_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v paul_n counsel_n 2_o counsel_n col._n 3._o 1_o 2_o to_o set_v our_o affection_n on_o thing_n above_o not_o on_o thing_n on_o the_o earth_n whereby_o we_o shall_v give_v a_o clear_a evidence_n that_o we_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n as_o our_o affection_n be_v carry_v so_o be_v our_o meditation_n if_o they_o be_v carry_v to_o worldly_a vanity_n our_o mind_n will_v be_v so_o encumber_a that_o we_o can_v free_o meditate_v upon_o those_o thing_n that_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n neither_o will_v our_o meditation_n be_v for_o god_n glory_n or_o for_o our_o eternal_a good_a but_o if_o our_o affection_n be_v carry_v towards_o heavenly_a thing_n than_o our_o meditation_n will_v be_v spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a and_o our_o action_n will_v be_v tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n 3._o god_n 1_o chron._n 29._o 3._o david_n set_v his_o affection_n to_o the_o house_n of_o his_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o prepare_v abundant_o of_o his_o own_o proper_a good_a of_o gold_n and_o silver_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o build_n of_o it_o wherefore_o it_o concern_v we_o very_o much_o to_o keep_v our_o heart_n close_o unto_o god_n that_o our_o mind_n may_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o he_o in_o our_o heavenly_a contemplation_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v in_o all_o our_o action_n the_o second_o direction_n be_v that_o our_o meditation_n must_v be_v of_o the_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o brain_n otherwise_o this_o duty_n be_v not_o so_o perform_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o it_o be_v the_o heart_n which_o god_n respect_v in_o all_o our_o service_n to_o he_o without_o which_o our_o best_a duty_n be_v not_o regard_v 19_o regard_v luk._n 2._o 19_o the_o bless_a virgin_n keep_v all_o the_o say_n of_o the_o shepherd_n and_o other_o concern_v christ_n and_o ponder_v they_o in_o her_o heart_n oh_o how_o acceptable_a be_v that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o god_n with_o a_o pure_a and_o perfect_a heart_n how_o effectual_a be_v that_o prayer_n which_o be_v present_v unto_o he_o with_o a_o true_a and_o faithful_a heart_n how_o please_a be_v those_o alm_n to_o god_n that_o be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a with_o a_o willing_a heart_n and_o how_o comfortable_a be_v those_o meditation_n which_o proceed_v from_o a_o upright_a heart_n the_o brain_n may_v work_v and_o the_o cogitation_n of_o the_o mind_n may_v be_v set_v upon_o holy_a object_n and_o all_o to_o little_a purpose_n if_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v want_v three_o the_o end_n of_o our_o meditation_n must_v crown_v the_o work_n with_o gracious_a acceptance_n and_o this_o must_v be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o do_v great_o honour_v god_n in_o our_o meditation_n when_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o his_o incomprehensible_a essence_n how_o infinite_a he_o be_v in_o all_o his_o divine_a attribute_n and_o how_o wonderful_a in_o all_o his_o work_n also_o when_o we_o meditate_v upon_o his_o law_n and_o upon_o his_o gracious_a promise_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n if_o hereby_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o reverence_n and_o adore_v his_o sacred_a majesty_n to_o love_v he_o for_o his_o goodness_n and_o to_o yield_v due_a obedience_n unto_o his_o command_n and_o if_o we_o can_v rest_v upon_o his_o promise_n and_o discern_v his_o wisdom_n and_o glory_n by_o his_o work_n this_o must_v be_v the_o main_a end_n of_o our_o meditation_n and_o if_o we_o do_v serious_o meditate_v upon_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n to_o a_o holy_a end_n than_o god_n will_v accept_v they_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v edify_v by_o they_o but_o if_o we_o propound_v any_o other_o end_n to_o ourselves_o whether_o it_o be_v for_o discourse_n or_o vainglory_n or_o the_o like_a we_o seek_v not_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n herein_o but_o we_o delude_v ourselves_o and_o defraud_v our_o soul_n of_o that_o heavenly_a comfort_n which_o otherwise_o they_o may_v have_v four_o our_o heart_n and_o conscience_n must_v be_v purify_v and_o cleanse_v from_o dead_a work_n by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o a_o holy_a zeal_n may_v be_v kindle_v in_o our_o affection_n and_o that_o our_o soul_n may_v feel_v the_o comfort_n of_o a_o spiritual_a warmth_n by_o our_o holy_a meditation_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o cleave_v fast_o to_o our_o conscience_n because_o we_o have_v no_o assurance_n by_o repentance_n that_o it_o be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n it_o will_v cool_v the_o zeal_n of_o our_o affection_n and_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o god_n assist_v grace_n so_o that_o our_o meditation_n can_v make_v no_o holy_a impression_n in_o our_o heart_n no_o print_n of_o piety_n in_o our_o life_n and_o conversation_n neither_o can_v they_o send_v forth_o any_o beam_n of_o true_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n wherefore_o if_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o sanctify_v and_o season_v with_o grace_n our_o meditation_n can_v be_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n nor_o to_o our_o own_o spiritual_a good_a neither_o can_v we_o say_v as_o the_o psalmist_n do_v 34._o do_v psal_n 104_o 34._o my_o meditation_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v sweet_a i_o will_v be_v glad_a in_o the_o lord_n this_o will_v move_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o will_v put_v a_o spiritual_a life_n into_o our_o meditation_n when_o our_o heart_n be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n so_o that_o we_o can_v free_o meditate_v upon_o the_o bounty_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o all_o his_o deal_n with_o we_o this_o we_o may_v do_v if_o faith_n go_v along_o in_o all_o our_o holy_a meditation_n five_o we_o must_v have_v some_o spiritual_a understanding_n in_o those_o thing_n whereon_o we_o desire_v to_o meditate_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v guide_v we_o in_o our_o meditation_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v glorify_v god_n and_o comfort_v our_o soul_n thereby_o otherwise_o the_o thought_n of_o our_o heart_n will_v wander_v and_o go_v far_o astray_o from_o the_o matter_n whereupon_o they_o shall_v be_v fix_v and_o we_o may_v easy_o lose_v ourselves_o in_o the_o dark_a if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o give_v we_o some_o spiritual_a light_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v we_o therein_o and_o we_o can_v receive_v no_o benefit_n by_o this_o holy_a service_n if_o it_o be_v not_o perform_v with_o a_o understand_a heart_n the_o more_o knowledge_n we_o have_v of_o what_o we_o intend_v to_o meditate_v the_o more_o will_v our_o heart_n be_v enlarge_v for_o it_o and_o the_o deep_a impression_n will_v our_o meditation_n make_v in_o our_o affection_n and_o the_o great_a will_v be_v the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o be_v the_o say_n of_o the_o psalmist_n 3._o psalmist_n psal_n 49._o 3._o the_o meditation_n of_o my_o heart_n shall_v be_v of_o understanding_n thus_o say_v paul_n 15_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 14_o 15_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o th●_n spirit_n and_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o so_o likewise_o we_o must_v meditate_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o with_o the_o understanding_n also_o how_o can_v we_o learn_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o how_o can_v we_o keep_v his_o law_n if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o give_v we_o understanding_n in_o they_o by_o his_o spirit_n this_o heavenly_a wisdom_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o we_o must_v with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n labour_v for_o according_a to_o this_o of_o solomon_n 7._o solomon_n prov._n 4._o 7._o wisdom_n be_v the_o principal_a thing_n therefore_o get_v wisdom_n and_o with_o all_o
sentence_n of_o condemnation_n upon_o they_o within_o they_o be_v conscience_n gnaw_v like_o the_o worm_n that_o die_v not_o because_o it_o be_v full_a of_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n without_o they_o all_o damn_a soul_n be_v howl_v and_o yell_v and_o on_o every_o side_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v burn_v what_o shall_v a_o wretched_a sinner_n now_o do_v that_o carry_v the_o guilt_n of_o his_o sin_n with_o he_o to_o this_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n how_o can_v his_o heart_n bear_v these_o fearful_a perplexity_n what_o way_n will_v he_o take_v to_o escape_v this_o dreadful_a judgement_n to_o go_v back_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o go_v forward_o be_v intolerable_a death_n will_v slay_v from_o he_o the_o grave_n can_v hold_v he_o the_o hill_n can_v cover_v he_o but_o there_o he_o must_v stand_v as_o a_o miserable_a forlorn_a and_o desperate_a wretch_n until_o he_o receive_v this_o doleful_a and_o irrecoverable_a sentence_n go_v you_o curse_v into_o everlastingfire_n the_o thought_n of_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v but_o most_o terrible_a now_o it_o concern_v every_o one_o to_o set_v his_o heart_n in_o a_o holy_a frame_n of_o fear_n and_o reverence_n and_o to_o humble_v his_o soul_n great_o before_o god_n when_o he_o intend_v to_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o this_o great_a judge_n or_o upon_o this_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n when_o a_o most_o severe_a account_n shall_v be_v require_v of_o every_o one_o of_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v do_v in_o this_o life_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_a also_o when_o they_o meditate_v on_o the_o fearful_a sentence_n which_o shall_v then_o be_v pronounce_v against_o all_o offender_n and_o execute_v upon_o they_o to_o all_o eternity_n without_o any_o hope_n of_o ease_n or_o remedy_n this_o be_v not_o to_o deter_v or_o affright_v we_o from_o a_o holy_a &_o pious_a meditation_n of_o these_o thing_n though_o they_o be_v every_o sad_a and_o doleful_a to_o natural_a man_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o drive_v we_o into_o despair_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o stand_v before_o this_o judge_n with_o comfort_n at_o that_o day_n or_o to_o avoid_v that_o dreadful_a sentence_n of_o condemnation_n but_o it_o be_v to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o use_v all_o care_n and_o diligence_n to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o time_n and_o to_o get_v a_o modest_a and_o a_o sober_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o repentance_n and_o that_o by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n we_o may_v be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o redeemer_n who_o shall_v be_v then_o our_o judge_n this_o consideration_n must_v needs_o comfort_v we_o much_o if_o we_o have_v any_o clear_a evidence_n that_o we_o belong_v unto_o christ_n to_o this_o end_n 13._o end_n mark_v 13._o christ_n foretell_v his_o disciple_n the_o fearful_a manner_n of_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n that_o they_o shall_v watch_v and_o pray_v that_o so_o it_o may_v not_o come_v sudden_o upon_o they_o to_o find_v they_o sleep_v in_o security_n or_o unprepared_a for_o it_o and_o what_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o he_o say_v unto_o all_o that_o we_o shall_v also_o watch_v and_o pray_v to_o escape_v the_o great_a danger_n of_o that_o terrible_a day_n and_o to_o stand_v with_o confidence_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n at_o that_o time_n when_o 12._o when_o 2_o pet._n 3._o 10_o 11_o 12._o peter_n have_v describe_v with_o what_o terror_n the_o lord_n will_v come_v to_o judgement_n he_o exhort_v we_o to_o a_o holy_a conversation_n and_o to_o godliness_n look_v for_o and_o haste_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o day_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v diligent_a that_o we_o may_v be_v find_v of_o he_o in_o peace_n without_o spot_n and_o blameless_a thus_o we_o may_v meet_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n with_o comfort_n if_o we_o can_v earnest_o long_a after_o it_o and_o can_v hearty_o desire_v to_o meet_v our_o lord_n christ_n when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o cloud_n unto_o judgement_n which_o we_o can_v do_v until_o we_o find_v by_o due_a examination_n that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o have_v live_v unto_o god_n and_o not_o unto_o ourselves_o wherefore_o thus_o say_v the_o son_n of_o sirach_n 20._o sirach_n eccl._n 18._o 20._o before_o judgement_n examine_v thyself_o and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n thou_o shall_v find_v mercy_n and_o as_o paul_n say_v 31._o say_v 1_o cor._n 11._o 31._o if_o we_o will_v judge_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v this_o try_v and_o judge_v of_o ourselves_o must_v be_v do_v in_o this_o life_n for_o after_o death_n there_o be_v no_o faith_n no_o repentance_n and_o no_o reformation_n of_o life_n if_o we_o die_v in_o our_o sin_n they_o will_v follow_v we_o unto_o judgement_n and_o accuse_v we_o before_o the_o great_a judge_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o they_o will_v cry_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n for_o the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n to_o be_v pass_v against_o we_o which_o also_o will_v present_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n to_o the_o utter_a destruction_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n in_o everlasting_a burn_n how_o to_o meditate_v comfortable_o on_o god_n if_o we_o desire_v to_o make_v our_o meditation_n on_o god_n to_o be_v comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n we_o must_v not_o look_v only_o upon_o his_o greatness_n but_o also_o upon_o his_o goodness_n for_o our_o shallow_a meditation_n can_v reach_v so_o far_o as_o to_o draw_v any_o true_a comfort_n to_o ourselves_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o of_o his_o greatness_n and_o power_n unless_o we_o do_v also_o look_v upon_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n which_o do_v open_v a_o fountain_n of_o true_a consolation_n to_o we_o not_o only_o in_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o but_o also_o in_o our_o suffering_n for_o he_o so_o likewise_o if_o we_o look_v only_o upon_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n without_o any_o relation_n to_o his_o mercy_n in_o christ_n we_o shall_v find_v little_a comfort_n in_o our_o meditation_n of_o he_o for_o we_o can_v but_o quake_v and_o tremble_v at_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n because_o we_o have_v break_v all_o his_o commandment_n and_o have_v transgress_v his_o law_n and_o therefore_o we_o lie_v under_o the_o curse_n and_o penalty_n of_o it_o also_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o altogether_o as_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n pollute_v and_o stain_v with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n both_o original_a and_o actual_a without_o any_o relation_n to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n it_o will_v make_v we_o ashamed_a to_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o afraid_a to_o think_v upon_o he_o because_o he_o be_v a_o sin-revenging_a god_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v sin_n to_o go_v unpunished_a but_o thus_o we_o shall_v have_v comfort_n in_o our_o meditation_n of_o god_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o in_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o than_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o christ_n have_v wrought_v our_o reconciliation_n with_o he_o by_o his_o death_n that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o atonement_n for_o we_o that_o he_o have_v satisfy_v his_o justice_n and_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o that_o he_o have_v take_v the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n upon_o himself_o and_o have_v nail_v it_o to_o his_o own_o cross_n 26._o cross_n rom._n 3._o 24_o 25_o 26._o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n through_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n to_o declare_v his_o righteousness_n that_o he_o may_v be_v just_a and_o the_o justifier_n of_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o jesus_n wherefore_o as_o john_n say_v 2._o say_v 1_o john_n 2._o 1_o 2._o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o prepitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o same_o john_n do_v express_v the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o god_n to_o we_o in_o these_o word_n 10._o word_n 1_o joh._n 4._o 10._o herein_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n now_o we_o may_v receive_v plenty_n of_o spiritual_a comfort_n when_o we_o meditate_v on_o god_n either_o in_o his_o greatness_n or_o in_o his_o goodness_n in_o his_o justice_n or_o in_o his_o mercy_n for_o by_o this_o atonement_n which_o christ_n have_v make_v for_o we_o god_n do_v not_o now_o look_v upon_o we_o as_o his_o enemy_n or_o
as_o rebel_n to_o he_o but_o he_o take_v we_o for_o his_o own_o people_n and_o as_o his_o servant_n 33._o servant_n jer._n 31._o 33._o according_a to_o his_o promise_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o also_o as_o his_o child_n by_o adoption_n in_o christ_n which_o make_v the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n sweet_a and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o be_v servant_n to_o a_o earthly_a prince_n but_o it_o be_v a_o far_o high_a title_n of_o honour_n to_o be_v servant_n to_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n the_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n all_o the_o apostle_n and_o saint_n of_o god_n do_v account_v it_o their_o high_a honour_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o they_o do_v much_o glory_n in_o this_o honourable_a title_n thus_o say_v that_o kingly_a prophet_n david_n 16._o david_n psal_n 116._o 16._o o_o lord_n true_o i_o be_o thy_o servant_n and_o the_o son_n of_o thy_o handmaid_n thou_o have_v loose_v my_o bond_n david_n use_v this_o as_o a_o strong_a motive_n to_o god_n to_o hear_v his_o prayer_n and_o to_o grant_v his_o request_n 16._o request_n psal_n 86._o 2_o 4_o 16._o o_o thou_o my_o god_n save_v thy_o servant_n that_o trust_v in_o thou_o rejoice_v the_o soul_n of_o thy_o servant_n f●r_v unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n do_v i_o lift_v up_o my_o soul_n o_o turn_n unto_o i_o and_o have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o give_v thy_o strength_n unto_o thy_o servant_n and_o save_v the_o son_n of_o thy_o handmaid_n god_n give_v this_o title_n of_o honour_n to_o his_o choice_a servant_n as_o to_o abraham_n to_o jacob_n to_o moses_n to_o david_n job_n zor●bab●l_n and_o to_o christ_n himself_o as_o he_o be_v man_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n 8._o prophet_n zech._n 3._o 8._o behold_v i_o will_v bring_v forth_o my_o servant_n the_o branch_n this_o honour_n have_v all_o they_o that_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o he_o have_v reconcile_v they_o to_o god_n his_o father_n and_o have_v make_v they_o his_o servant_n by_o grace_n wherefore_o now_o if_o we_o have_v any_o clear_a evidence_n to_o our_o conscience_n that_o we_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o atonement_n if_o we_o do_v serve_v and_o obey_v he_o with_o faithful_a heart_n in_o sincerity_n and_o in_o truth_n we_o may_v then_o cheerful_o fix_v our_o meditation_n upon_o god_n which_o will_v be_v acceptable_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o comfortable_a to_o our_o own_o soul_n for_o by_o this_o sweet_a relation_n that_o we_o have_v unto_o god_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n our_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o he_o will_v be_v accept_v though_o they_o be_v imperfect_o perform_v by_o we_o if_o we_o show_v our_o best_a care_n to_o please_v he_o from_o a_o upright_a heart_n as_o his_o faithful_a servant_n ought_v to_o do_v also_o we_o may_v apply_v ourselves_o by_o holy_a supplication_n to_o our_o heavenly_a lord_n as_o be_v his_o servant_n to_o protect_v we_o from_o our_o enemy_n to_o provide_v for_o we_o in_o our_o necessity_n to_o succour_v we_o in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o to_o countenance_v we_o as_o his_o servant_n in_o all_o our_o temptation_n that_o our_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v we_o and_o that_o our_o spirit_n may_v not_o sink_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o they_o whatsoever_o we_o want_v we_o may_v have_v it_o of_o god_n and_o whatsoever_o we_o fear_v may_v come_v upon_o we_o he_o will_v prevent_v it_o or_o fit_v we_o for_o it_o or_o else_o he_o will_v sanctify_v it_o for_o our_o good_a that_o we_o may_v find_v comfort_n in_o it_o wherefore_o we_o need_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o contemplate_v his_o greatness_n for_o his_o goodness_n will_v sweeten_v that_o fear_n we_o need_v not_o fear_v death_n in_o a_o servile_a way_n for_o it_o have_v no_o sting_n to_o hurt_v we_o and_o we_o need_v not_o be_v terrify_v at_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o great_a judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a nor_o at_o the_o rigour_n and_o severity_n of_o his_o justice_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v be_v then_o our_o judge_n who_o be_v now_o our_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n we_o can_v then_o but_o show_v our_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o our_o love_n to_o christ_n by_o our_o willing_a and_o ready_a obedience_n to_o the_o command_n of_o god_n and_o by_o our_o thankful_a remembrance_n of_o our_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ_n by_o ruminate_v on_o his_o word_n and_o by_o contemplate_v his_o wonderful_a work_n our_o thought_n will_v be_v continual_o upon_o he_o our_o delight_n will_v be_v to_o meditate_v on_o he_o and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v always_o towards_o he_o consider_v further_a what_o christ_n have_v do_v for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o comfortable_o meditate_v on_o god_n he_o have_v not_o only_o redeem_v we_o out_o of_o the_o servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n and_o make_v we_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o grace_n but_o also_o 12_o also_o john_n 1._o 12_o he_o have_v give_v power_n to_o as_o many_o as_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o privilege_n and_o honour_n we_o have_v only_o by_o faith_n 6._o faith_n gal._n 4._o 5_o 6._o who_o have_v redeem_v we_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o because_o we_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o our_o heart_n cry_v abba_n ftther_o how_o comfortable_a then_o will_v our_o meditation_n be_v to_o our_o soul_n when_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o god_n as_o he_o be_v our_o father_n what_o can_v deject_v our_o spirit_n or_o make_v we_o afraid_a if_o we_o have_v a_o sure_a confidence_n that_o god_n be_v our_o father_n can_v we_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o low_a degree_n of_o misery_n than_o 19_o than_o luk._n 15._o 18_o 19_o the_o poor_a prodigal_a in_o the_o gospel_n be_v and_o yet_o when_o he_o remember_v his_o father_n he_o be_v comfort_v and_o refresh_v can_v any_o poor_a soul_n be_v deep_a plunge_v in_o sin_n or_o lead_v a_o more_o vicious_a life_n than_o this_o prodigal_a do_v and_o yet_o his_o father_n do_v not_o cast_v he_o off_o but_o upon_o his_o true_a submission_n he_o receive_v he_o again_o as_o his_o son_n why_o then_o shall_v we_o despair_v of_o mercy_n though_o our_o sin_n be_v many_o and_o very_o great_a why_o shall_v we_o fear_v the_o terror_n of_o death_n if_o we_o be_v well_o persuade_v of_o our_o adoption_n for_o 7._o for_o gal._n 4._o 7._o we_o be_v heir_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o we_o go_v to_o possess_v that_o inheritance_n which_o belong_v to_o we_o as_o son_n and_o why_o shall_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v terrible_a to_o we_o see_v christ_n our_o redeemer_n will_v make_v up_o our_o account_n for_o we_o and_o will_v perfect_v with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n whatsoever_o be_v want_v on_o our_o part_n do_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n will_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o the_o bondage_n of_o satan_n and_o will_v free_v we_o from_o the_o strictness_n of_o the_o law_n the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n &_o from_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n and_o at_o last_o will_v leave_v we_o to_o ourselves_o to_o answer_v the_o rigour_n of_o god_n justice_n for_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v do_v here_o in_o the_o flesh_n sure_o not_o for_o then_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n have_v not_o be_v perfect_o finish_v but_o christ_n will_v be_v then_o our_o hide_v place_n he_o will_v cover_v all_o our_o sin_n under_o the_o robe_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n and_o will_v shelter_v we_o from_o the_o fierceness_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o from_o the_o severity_n of_o god_n justice_n we_o have_v now_o much_o matter_n for_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a meditation_n to_o comfort_n and_o refresh_v our_o languish_a soul_n when_o they_o be_v any_o way_n perplex_v with_o sorrow_n fear_n or_o doubt_n if_o we_o ruminate_v upon_o our_o happy_a condition_n by_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n for_o we_o have_v the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n by_o the_o right_n of_o purchase_n and_o so_o be_v none_o but_o such_o only_a who_o christ_n have_v buy_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n also_o if_o we_o meditate_v upon_o our_o adoption_n it_o will_v be_v very_o comfortable_a to_o we_o and_o exceed_v sweet_a to_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n for_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o hereby_o all_o the_o privilege_n of_o son_n both_o in_o what_o we_o be_v free_v from_o and_o in_o what_o we_o have_v right_a unto_o for_o we_o be_v free_v from_o all_o evil_a of_o sin_n and_o from_o all_o evil_a of_o punishment_n sin_n have_v no_o power_n to_o condemn_v we_o though_o it_o
conscience_n with_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o burden_n heavy_a than_o we_o can_v bear_v thus_o say_v the_o wise_a man_n 14_o man_n prov._n 18._o 14_o a_o wound_a spirit_n who_o can_v bear_v we_o can_v have_v no_o true_a comfort_n in_o these_o or_o the_o like_a affliction_n but_o what_o come_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o no_o hope_n of_o succour_n or_o relief_n in_o our_o distress_n without_o he_o if_o our_o spirit_n be_v wound_v he_o only_o can_v apply_v the_o true_a balm_n of_o gilead_n to_o cure_v they_o this_o balm_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o universal_a remedy_n to_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o none_o but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v apply_v it_o to_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n also_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o refresh_v we_o with_o the_o comfort_n of_o grace_n and_o with_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o sink_v under_o the_o great_a weight_n of_o our_o calamity_n and_o misery_n but_o we_o may_v draw_v comfort_n enough_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o what_o sad_a condition_n soever_o we_o be_v for_o he_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o our_o suffering_n with_o true_a peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o mind_n in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n he_o will_v sanctify_v all_o our_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n with_o save_a grace_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v for_o our_o good_a and_o will_v witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n also_o he_o will_v give_v we_o strength_n and_o courage_n to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o christ_n and_o for_o righteousness_n sake_n and_o likewise_o heavenly_a wisdom_n right_o to_o use_v every_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n to_o defend_v ourselves_o from_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n and_o to_o beat_v back_o or_o quench_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o his_o temptation_n and_o evil_a suggestion_n may_v not_o wound_v our_o soul_n to_o the_o death_n last_o he_o will_v perfect_v all_o with_o the_o gift_n of_o perseverance_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trial_n and_o we_o shall_v have_v assure_v hope_n of_o conquest_n and_o victory_n in_o all_o our_o conflict_n and_o combat_n here_o and_o to_o be_v crown_v with_o immortal_a glory_n hereafter_o now_o let_v this_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o draw_v comfort_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o we_o be_v afflict_v trouble_a or_o any_o way_n perplex_v with_o grief_n of_o heart_n sorrow_n of_o spirit_n or_o anguish_n of_o soul_n which_o we_o may_v do_v if_o we_o know_v that_o no_o outward_a comfort_n can_v support_v we_o without_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o rest_v and_o rely_v upon_o they_o but_o do_v seek_v to_o the_o true_a comforter_n by_o earnest_n and_o faithful_a prayer_n in_o all_o our_o necessity_n which_o be_v a_o sure_a mean_n to_o draw_v comfort_n from_o he_o when_o we_o want_v it_o also_o if_o we_o be_v true_o sensible_a that_o we_o do_v want_v his_o gracious_a assistance_n to_o carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o the_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o world_n upon_o our_o humble_a supplication_n to_o he_o he_o will_v return_v we_o a_o comfortable_a answer_n as_o shall_v be_v best_a for_o we_o so_o likewise_o if_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n do_v stick_v close_o unto_o we_o or_o if_o we_o possess_v our_o former_a iniquity_n by_o a_o sinful_a remembrance_n of_o they_o so_o that_o we_o be_v true_o humble_v in_o the_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o they_o and_o that_o our_o heart_n be_v touch_v with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v then_o come_v with_o spiritual_a consolation_n to_o comfort_v our_o poor_a soul_n with_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o all_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n last_o we_o may_v draw_v comfort_n from_o this_o spiritual_a fountain_n by_o our_o pious_a and_o devout_a meditation_n of_o he_o for_o than_o he_o will_v give_v we_o a_o sweet_a taste_n of_o his_o heavenly_a grace_n to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o he_o will_v give_v we_o spiritual_a joy_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o our_o affliction_n also_o he_o will_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o will_v seal_v our_o redemption_n to_o we_o by_o his_o blood_n whereby_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v eternal_a felicity_n for_o ever_o o_o what_o sweet_a meditation_n may_v we_o draw_v from_o this_o heavenly_a comforter_n in_o all_o the_o sadness_n of_o our_o heart_n thus_o we_o may_v meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o be_v the_o true_a comforter_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v of_o his_o divine_a operation_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v also_o draw_v much_o profitable_a and_o comfortable_a matter_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n and_o for_o our_o better_a understanding_n herein_o this_o eternal_a spirit_n of_o life_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o several_a resemblance_n to_o show_v in_o what_o manner_n and_o how_o various_o he_o work_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o our_o meditation_n may_v be_v order_v according_o first_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o dove_n for_o when_o christ_n be_v baptize_v 16_o baptize_v mat._n 3._o 16_o he_o descend_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o rest_v upon_o he_o which_o be_v to_o show_v his_o spiritual_a anoint_v to_o his_o office_n of_o mediatorship_n and_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o christ_n how_o humble_a and_o and_o meek_a he_o be_v how_o innocent_a and_o harmless_a how_o love_v and_o how_o ready_a and_o willing_a he_o be_v to_o do_v good_a to_o all_o these_o dovelike_a quality_n be_v pour_v upon_o christ_n above_o measure_n that_o we_o his_o member_n may_v receive_v the_o same_o in_o some_o measure_n from_o he_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o will_v put_v all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n into_o a_o new_a frame_n he_o will_v change_v the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n into_o a_o holy_a temper_n of_o proud_a and_o haughty_a mind_v he_o will_v make_v we_o lowly_a and_o meek_a of_o hateful_a and_o malicious_a he_o will_v make_v we_o love_v and_o courteous_a to_o all_o he_o will_v so_o season_v we_o with_o sanctify_a grace_n throughout_o that_o our_o evil_a disposition_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o a_o gracious_a condition_n this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n will_v bring_v we_o a_o olive_n leaf_n 11_o leaf_n gen._n 8._o 11_o like_o noah_n dove_n to_o let_v we_o know_v that_o though_o we_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o trouble_n danger_n or_o distress_n yet_o we_o shall_v be_v preserve_v and_o deliver_v and_o though_o we_o be_v trouble_v disquiet_v or_o perplex_v in_o our_o mind_n yet_o at_o the_o last_o we_o shall_v have_v peace_n tranquillity_n spiritual_a joy_n and_o comfort_v now_o by_o this_o resemblance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v examine_v ourselves_o what_o purity_n and_o holiness_n he_o have_v wrought_v in_o we_o what_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n what_o patience_n under_o the_o cross_n what_o love_n to_o god_n and_o to_o our_o neighbour_n and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v sanctify_v in_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n &_o in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o our_o body_n also_o how_o much_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n be_v weaken_v in_o we_o and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v change_v from_o that_o which_o be_v sinful_a to_o newness_n of_o life_n if_o we_o can_v find_v these_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o we_o they_o will_v afford_v we_o profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n second_o some_o of_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o resemblance_n of_o that_o 21_o that_o exod._n 13_o 21_o pillar_n of_o a_o cloud_n which_o go_v before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n by_o day_n when_o they_o march_v out_o of_o egypt_n to_o guide_v they_o the_o right_a way_n that_o god_n will_v have_v they_o go_v towards_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n this_o pillar_n do_v also_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o from_o their_o enemy_n it_o keep_v the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o the_o sun_n from_o they_o and_o it_o cool_v and_o moisten_v the_o earth_n with_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a dew_n which_o be_v a_o great_a refresh_n
enemy_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o all_o danger_n and_o they_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o pillar_n to_o be_v a_o clear_a evidence_n to_o they_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o leave_v they_o nor_o forsake_v they_o but_o will_v constant_o abide_v with_o they_o until_o he_o have_v bring_v they_o past_o all_o danger_n and_o have_v deliver_v they_o out_o of_o all_o their_o trouble_n and_o until_o he_o have_v give_v they_o rest_n from_o all_o their_o enemy_n 12._o enemy_n act._n 12._o thus_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n deliver_v peter_n out_o of_o prison_n and_o will_v not_o leave_v he_o until_o he_o have_v bring_v he_o past_o the_o first_o and_o second_o ward_n and_o through_o the_o iron_n gate_n into_o the_o city_n where_o he_o may_v secure_v himself_o from_o herod_n who_o seek_v his_o life_n these_o pillar_n be_v also_o a_o witness_n to_o they_o of_o the_o covenant_n and_o promise_n which_o god_n make_v to_o their_o father_n that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n for_o their_o inheritance_n and_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v always_o remember_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n their_o miraculous_a deliverance_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n to_o they_o all_o the_o time_n they_o travel_v through_o the_o vast_a wilderness_n for_o they_o have_v still_o a_o pillar_n to_o conduct_v they_o and_o god_n will_v have_v a_o memorial_n keep_v of_o all_o his_o wonderful_a work_n thus_o 24_o thus_o josh_n 24_o the_o lord_n command_v joshua_n to_o take_v twelve_o stone_n out_o of_o jordan_n and_o to_o leave_v they_o in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o shall_v lodge_v that_o night_n to_o be_v a_o perpetual_a memorial_n that_o the_o water_n of_o jerdan_n be_v out_o off_o before_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o it_o pass_v over_o jordan_n in_o nehemiahs_n time_n 19_o time_n neh._n 9_o 12_o 19_o the_o levite_n in_o their_o confession_n of_o god_n goodness_n do_v remember_v how_o god_n bring_v his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n &_o lead_v they_o by_o those_o two_o pillar_n &_o though_o they_o do_v high_o provoke_v god_n by_o their_o melt_a calf_n yet_o he_o forsake_v they_o not_o in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o pillar_n of_o the_o cloud_n depart_v not_o from_o they_o by_o day_n neither_o the_o pillar_n of_o fire_n by_o night_n 26._o night_n gen._n 19_o 26._o lot_n wife_n become_v a_o pillar_n of_o salt_n because_o against_o god_n commandment_n she_o look_v back_o towards_o sodom_n 32_o sodom_n luk._n 17._o 32_o which_o great_a judgement_n christ_n will_v have_v to_o be_v perpetual_o remember_v 52._o remember_v gen._n 31._o 45_o 52._o jacob_n set_v up_o a_o stone_n for_o a_o pillar_n as_o a_o memorial_n of_o his_o integrity_n to_o laban_n and_o for_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o be_v between_o they_o also_o 20_o also_o gen._n 35._o 20_o he_o set_v a_o pillar_n upon_o rachel_n grave_n for_o a_o perpetual_a memorial_n of_o she_o 8._o she_o 2_o sam._n 18._o 8._o absalon_n rear_v up_o for_o himself_o a_o pillar_n in_o the_o king_n dale_n for_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o his_o name_n for_o he_o say_v i_o have_v no_o son_n to_o keep_v my_o name_n in_o remembrance_n and_o therefore_o he_o call_v the_o pillar_n after_o his_o own_o name_n if_o we_o do_v well_o ruminate_v upon_o these_o thing_n and_o imprint_v they_o in_o our_o heart_n it_o will_v make_v much_o for_o our_o spiritual_a consolation_n for_o where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v settle_v his_o abode_n it_o be_v to_o abide_v there_o for_o ever_o and_o if_o we_o enjoy_v his_o bless_a presence_n it_o be_v the_o great_a comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n he_o will_v be_v as_o a_o strong_a pillar_n for_o we_o to_o rest_v upon_o when_o we_o be_v assault_v with_o strong_a temptation_n or_o beset_v with_o peril_n and_o danger_n or_o any_o way_n visit_v with_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n he_o be_v also_o such_o a_o pillar_n of_o true_a comfort_n as_o will_v not_o leave_v we_o in_o any_o sad_a condition_n or_o misery_n but_o will_v still_o continue_v with_o we_o until_o he_o have_v bring_v we_o out_o of_o all_o our_o trouble_n danger_n and_o distress_n this_o similitude_n of_o a_o pillar_n do_v so_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o god_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o this_o be_v also_o great_a consolation_n to_o we_o that_o we_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n to_o bear_v witness_n to_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n though_o the_o outward_a man_n be_v miserable_o afflict_v perplex_a and_o torment_v this_o consideration_n will_v appease_v the_o clamour_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o accusation_n of_o our_o conscience_n and_o though_o we_o be_v in_o our_o own_o apprehension_n as_o quite_o forsake_v of_o god_n yet_o we_o shall_v hereby_o be_v preserve_v from_o sink_v under_o so_o great_a a_o pressure_n of_o temptation_n and_o though_o the_o devil_n do_v aggravate_v our_o sin_n to_o make_v we_o cast_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o pardon_n yet_o this_o bless_a spirit_n will_v make_v we_o look_v up_o to_o christ_n by_o faith_n as_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n nail_v to_o the_o same_o cross_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o which_o will_v frustrate_v the_o malicious_a design_n of_o the_o devil_n against_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n here_o also_o we_o may_v find_v profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o edification_n for_o it_o do_v teach_v we_o to_o rest_v firm_o upon_o the_o aid_n and_o assistance_n of_o this_o bless_a spirit_n in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n and_o in_o all_o the_o calamity_n and_o tribulation_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o present_a world_n it_o do_v also_o bind_v we_o to_o a_o thankful_a remembrance_n of_o all_o the_o benefit_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o of_o all_o the_o heavenly_a endowment_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o and_o of_o all_o the_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o he_o have_v wrought_v in_o we_o that_o we_o may_v employ_v they_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o good_a of_o our_o own_o soul_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o grieve_v the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o quench_v his_o gracious_a motion_n but_o to_o yield_v all_o willing_a and_o ready_a obedience_n to_o his_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n this_o do_v also_o teach_v we_o to_o rest_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n both_o for_o provision_n for_o succour_v in_o time_n of_o need_n and_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o he_o that_o have_v promise_v be_v faithful_a and_o true_a and_o if_o we_o wait_v his_o appoint_a time_n he_o will_v assure_o perform_v it_o last_o we_o must_v mark_v and_o observe_v what_o special_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o have_v find_v in_o our_o heart_n either_o for_o the_o illumination_n of_o our_o understanding_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n or_o work_v our_o perverse_a will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n or_o sanctify_v of_o our_o affection_n to_o newness_n of_o life_n that_o we_o may_v glorify_v god_n by_o our_o thankfulness_n for_o they_o four_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o seal_n for_o 14._o for_o eph._n 13_o 14._o we_o be_v seal_v with_o this_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n which_o be_v the_o earnest_n of_o our_o inheritance_n until_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o purchase_a possession_n unto_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n also_o paul_n say_v 12_o say_v 2_o cor._n 1._o 12_o that_o god_n have_v seal_v we_o and_o give_v the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n also_o again_o he_o say_v 13._o say_v eph._n 4._o 13._o grieve_v not_o the_o holy_a sptrit_a of_o god_n whereby_o you_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n whatsoever_o god_n have_v decree_v for_o our_o preservation_n and_o salvation_n be_v seal_v with_o this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o can_v be_v reverse_v but_o be_v more_o firm_a 8._o firm_a esth_n 8._o 8._o than_o the_o law_n of_o the_o mede_n and_o persian_n 19_o persian_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 19_o for_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n stand_v sure_a have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v they_o that_o be_v he_o in_o time_n of_o common_a calamity_n god_n will_v set_v 〈◊〉_d seal_n of_o preservation_n upon_o his_o own_o servant_n that_o th●●_n shall_v not_o be_v hurt_v 19_o hurt_v the_o angel_n that_o ascend_v f_o 〈…〉_o east_n have_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o live_a god_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o the_o four_o angel_n to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v to_o hurt_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o sea_n say_v hurt_v not_o the_o earth_n neither_o the_o sea_n nor_o the_o
end_n shall_v be_v comfortable_a to_o thou_o according_a to_o this_o of_o david_n 38._o david_n ps_n 37._o 35_o 37_o 38._o mark_v the_o perfect_a man_n and_o behold_v the_o upright_a for_o the_o end_n of_o that_o man_n be_v peace_n but_o though_o the_o wicked_a be_v in_o great_a power_n spread_v themselves_o like_o a_o green_a bay_n tree_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v together_o and_o their_o end_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o if_o we_o have_v these_o benefit_n and_o comfort_n and_o much_o more_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o must_v then_o study_v how_o to_o be_v thankful_a to_o he_o for_o his_o goodness_n and_o how_o to_o express_v it_o by_o our_o conformity_n to_o his_o will_n and_o by_o our_o ready_a obedience_n to_o his_o holy_a motion_n also_o we_o must_v have_v recourse_n unto_o he_o by_o fervent_a prayer_n for_o what_o we_o want_v as_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o his_o good_a pleasure_n to_o grant_v but_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n with_o what_o heart_n and_o with_o what_o affection_n we_o make_v our_o address_n unto_o he_o for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o secret_a or_o darling_a sin_n lurk_v in_o we_o he_o will_v easy_o find_v it_o out_o he_o can_v search_v into_o the_o most_o secret_a corner_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o his_o all_o see_v eye_n if_o our_o heart_n be_v more_o set_v upon_o carnal_a pleasure_n or_o worldly_a profit_n than_o to_o meditate_v on_o his_o gracious_a operation_n and_o how_o to_o enjoy_v he_o he_o will_v soon_o discover_v our_o hypocrisy_n and_o it_o will_v stop_v the_o current_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o our_o heart_n but_o if_o he_o find_v truth_n and_o sincerity_n in_o our_o inward_a part_n he_o will_v then_o plentiful_o bestow_v his_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o grace_n upon_o we_o for_o he_o will_v give_v we_o more_o meekness_n of_o spirit_n more_o patience_n in_o our_o trouble_n more_o comfort_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o more_o grace_n to_o cleanse_v and_o purge_v away_o the_o leprosy_n and_o filth_n of_o our_o sin_n also_o he_o will_v put_v our_o hard_a and_o stony_a heart_n into_o a_o gracious_a condition_n fit_a to_o receive_v the_o print_n of_o his_o own_o image_n to_o seal_v unto_o we_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o salvation_n no_o duty_n then_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n can_v be_v hard_a to_o we_o if_o we_o be_v guide_v by_o this_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o nothing_o that_o we_o suffer_v can_v be_v bitter_a to_o our_o soul_n if_o this_o heavenly_a comforter_n have_v make_v his_o abode_n in_o our_o heart_n in_o the_o last_o place_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o no_o save_v and_o sanctify_a grace_n can_v be_v wrought_v in_o we_o but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o can_v discern_v nothing_o of_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n for_o our_o comfort_n if_o we_o have_v not_o a_o spiritual_a light_n from_o he_o he_o work_v faith_n in_o we_o to_o unite_v we_o to_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v application_n to_o ourselves_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o suffering_n for_o our_o redemption_n he_o work_v repentance_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o manifest_v the_o power_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n in_o we_o by_o the_o mortify_n and_o kill_v of_o the_o power_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o the_o quicken_a of_o we_o up_o unto_o newness_n of_o life_n the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v our_o filial_a love_n to_o god_n our_o hope_n in_o his_o promise_n our_o christian_a patience_n in_o bear_v the_o cross_n with_o a_o meek_a and_o a_o content_a mind_n our_o christian_a fortitude_n and_o courage_n in_o all_o our_o spiritual_a combat_n and_o trial_n and_o our_o constancy_n to_o hold_v out_o until_o we_o have_v obtain_v victory_n he_o give_v we_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o justification_n the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o life_n ability_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o meditate_v on_o he_o as_o we_o ought_v and_o he_o work_v the_o renovation_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n in_o we_o these_o heavenly_a grace_n be_v as_o so_o many_o precious_a jewel_n to_o adorn_v our_o soul_n that_o we_o may_v be_v all_o glorious_a within_o 13_o within_o psal_n 45._o 13_o like_o solomon_n queen_n to_o be_v espouse_v unto_o christ_n for_o if_o we_o be_v deck_v with_o these_o ornament_n of_o grace_n and_o clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o cover_v the_o shame_n and_o the_o deformity_n of_o our_o sin_n than_o god_n will_v accept_v of_o our_o person_n and_o of_o our_o offering_n and_o will_v hereafter_o wed_v we_o to_o his_o own_o son_n wherefore_o when_o we_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n to_o partake_v of_o his_o divine_a ordinance_n or_o to_o perform_v any_o holy_a service_n unto_o he_o we_o must_v humble_o crave_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o give_v we_o understand_v heart_n and_o sanctify_a affection_n and_o to_o put_v a_o holy_a zeal_n into_o our_o prayer_n and_o meditation_n that_o they_o may_v mount_v up_o above_o all_o earthly_a thing_n and_o ascend_v up_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v and_o gracious_o accept_v 33._o accept_v act_n 7._o 30_o 32_o 33._o when_o moses_n perceive_v that_o god_n be_v in_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n in_o a_o bush_n he_o tremble_v and_o dare_v not_o behold_v until_o he_o have_v put_v off_o his_o shoe_n from_o his_o foot_n because_o the_o place_n where_o he_o stand_v be_v holy_a ground_n so_o likewise_o 14._o likewise_o josh_n 5._o 13_o 14._o though_o joshua_n be_v so_o valiant_a as_o to_o withstand_v a_o man_n of_o war_n that_o stand_v over_o against_o he_o with_o his_o sword_n draw_v in_o his_o hand_n yet_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o the_o host_n of_o the_o lord_n even_o god_n himself_o he_o fall_v on_o his_o face_n to_o the_o earth_n and_o do_v worship_n and_o lose_v his_o shoe_n from_o off_o his_o foot_n because_o the_o place_n whereon_o he_o stand_v be_v holy_a thus_o we_o ought_v to_o appear_v before_o god_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a and_o to_o come_v with_o all_o due_a reverence_n into_o his_o presence_n when_o we_o perform_v any_o holy_a duty_n unto_o he_o also_o to_o put_v off_o all_o our_o filthiness_n and_o to_o put_v on_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n because_o we_o come_v into_o a_o holy_a place_n where_o god_n himself_o be_v present_a who_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o unclean_a thing_n to_o come_v near_o unto_o he_o if_o we_o can_v thus_o meditate_v on_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o shall_v find_v much_o sweetness_n and_o comfort_n in_o our_o meditation_n now_o let_v thy_o heart_n meditate_v free_o on_o this_o bless_a comforter_n with_o a_o holy_a devotion_n and_o pure_a affection_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o any_o sorrowful_a or_o afflict_a condition_n or_o when_o any_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n do_v seize_v upon_o thou_o for_o true_a consolation_n be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v but_o only_o in_o he_o let_v thy_o heart_n also_o ruminate_v upon_o those_o several_a resemblance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o will_v help_v thy_o understanding_n to_o discern_v how_o he_o work_v in_o thy_o heart_n to_o purge_v thou_o from_o thy_o corruption_n to_o instruct_v thou_o in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n to_o confirm_v thou_o in_o the_o truth_n to_o change_v thy_o sinful_a disposition_n into_o a_o sanctify_a condition_n to_o seal_v the_o assurance_n of_o thy_o redemption_n to_o thy_o soul_n to_o blow_v away_o all_o vain_a and_o sinful_a cogitation_n out_o of_o thy_o mind_n and_o to_o give_v thou_o all_o spiritual_a ability_n meet_v for_o a_o christian_a warfare_n in_o this_o life_n that_o thou_o may_v have_v a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v how_o to_o meditate_v upon_o the_o work_v of_o god_n if_o we_o consider_v and_o look_v well_o upon_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o earth_n how_o he_o have_v beautify_v and_o adorn_v the_o heaven_n with_o innumerable_a glorious_a body_n and_o replenish_v the_o earth_n with_o all_o variety_n of_o plant_n and_o fruitful_a tree_n and_o with_o all_o kind_n of_o live_a creature_n both_o great_a and_o small_a also_o how_o he_o have_v fill_v the_o bowel_n of_o the_o earth_n with_o rich_a and_o precious_a mineral_n and_o the_o sea_n with_o fish_n of_o all_o kind_n we_o can_v then_o but_o admire_v the_o omnipotent_a power_n the_o infinite_a wisdom_n the_o transcendent_a glory_n and_o the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n the_o great_a creator_n who_o have_v make_v they_o all_o for_o our_o use_n and_o service_n and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v by_o they_o this_o consideration_n will_v help_v our_o understanding_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o to_o raise_v up_o our_o heart_n
son_n commit_v iniquity_n i_o will_v chastise_v he_o with_o the_o rod_n of_o man_n and_o with_o the_o stripe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n but_o my_o mercy_n shall_v not_o depart_v away_o from_o he_o but_o god_n punish_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o wicked_a in_o anger_n and_o with_o much_o severity_n for_o their_o destruction_n his_o own_o child_n be_v reform_v by_o their_o correction_n but_o the_o wicked_a be_v more_o harden_v in_o their_o sin_n by_o their_o punishment_n this_o of_o the_o prophet_n be_v verify_v in_o they_o 3._o they_o jer._n 5._o 3._o o_o lord_n thou_o have_v strike_v they_o but_o they_o have_v not_o grieve_v thou_o have_v consume_v they_o but_o they_o have_v refuse_v to_o receive_v correction_n they_o have_v make_v their_o face_n hard_a than_o a_o rock_n they_o have_v refuse_v to_o return_v god_n do_v also_o bestow_v his_o mercy_n and_o blessing_n upon_o they_o both_o he_o do_v common_o give_v more_o of_o his_o temporal_a blessing_n to_o the_o wicked_a than_o he_o do_v to_o the_o godly_a to_o leave_v they_o without_o excuse_n and_o to_o give_v they_o mean_n and_o ability_n to_o glorify_v god_n but_o they_o abuse_v they_o to_o sin_n and_o uncleanness_n to_o excess_n and_o riot_n 13_o riot_n eccl._n 5._o 13_o this_o be_v that_o evil_n which_o the_o preacher_n do_v see_v under_o the_o sun_n namely_o riches_n keep_v for_o the_o owner_n thereof_o to_o their_o hurt_n but_o god_n have_v special_a gift_n and_o blessing_n which_o he_o bestow_v only_o upon_o the_o godly_a and_o these_o be_v the_o save_n and_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n which_o be_v peculiar_a only_o to_o they_o and_o reserve_v for_o they_o wherefore_o now_o if_o we_o serious_o ruminate_v upon_o the_o work_v of_o god_n we_o shall_v find_v much_o matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o for_o our_o spiritual_a consolation_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o the_o due_a observation_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o love_n of_o he_o to_o the_o fear_n and_o dread_n of_o he_o and_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o his_o command_n we_o have_v daily_a experience_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o of_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n which_o shall_v strengthen_v our_o faith_n hope_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o though_o he_o do_v sometime_o bring_v we_o into_o great_a strait_n and_o lay_v great_a trial_n upon_o we_o and_o it_o shall_v keep_v we_o from_o murmur_v and_o repine_v though_o he_o do_v long_o delay_v to_o send_v we_o help_v and_o comfort_n in_o time_n of_o need_n also_o it_o shall_v keep_v we_o from_o cark_n care_n and_o from_o immoderate_a seek_v of_o earthly_a thing_n because_o god_n will_v provide_v for_o we_o and_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o lack_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a we_o shall_v therefore_o wait_v upon_o he_o and_o wait_v patient_o for_o his_o salvation_n in_o all_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n in_o all_o our_o trouble_n and_o tribulation_n and_o in_o all_o strait_n and_o distress_n which_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o wicked_a man_n can_v bring_v upon_o we_o for_o god_n can_v and_o will_v by_o his_o wise_a providence_n turn_v that_o to_o our_o good_a which_o they_o intend_v and_o purpose_n for_o our_o hurt_n how_o shall_v we_o then_o delight_v to_o meditate_v on_o god_n in_o all_o his_o work_n see_v 17._o see_v psal_n 145._o 17._o the_o lord_n be_v righteous_a in_o all_o his_o way_n and_o holy_a in_o all_o his_o work_n what_o comfort_n can_v we_o want_v in_o the_o sad_a time_n see_v god_n watch_v over_o we_o by_o his_o divine_a providence_n for_o our_o good_a what_o need_v we_o fear_v the_o malice_n or_o power_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n see_v we_o have_v god_n protection_n to_o keep_v and_o defend_v we_o from_o they_o if_o we_o ●ay_v up_o these_o thing_n in_o our_o heart_n our_o soul_n will_v have_v the_o comfort_n of_o they_o in_o all_o the_o sadness_n and_o sorrow_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o life_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o man._n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o principal_a piece_n of_o god_n workmanship_n which_o he_o wrought_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o that_o be_v the_o creation_n of_o man_n in_o which_o great_a work_n the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n do_v agree_v with_o one_o consent_n and_o give_v he_o such_o a_o body_n as_o shall_v be_v capable_a of_o immortality_n and_o such_o a_o soul_n as_o shall_v receive_v the_o impression_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 26_o lord_n gen._n 1._o 26_o let_v we_o make_v man_n in_o our_o image_n after_o our_o likeness_n man_n must_v needs_o then_o be_v create_v in_o innocency_n in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n without_o spot_n and_o blemish_n or_o any_o imperfection_n either_o in_o his_o soul_n or_o body_n there_o be_v no_o perverseness_n in_o his_o will_n no_o folly_n in_o his_o understanding_n &_o no_o corruption_n in_o his_o heart_n for_o god_n give_v he_o ability_n and_o a_o willing_a mind_n to_o obey_v he_o and_o a_o wise_a and_o a_o understand_a heart_n able_a right_o to_o know_v god_n his_o creator_n and_o to_o worship_n and_o serve_v he_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v serve_v also_o he_o do_v know_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o field_n of_o all_o the_o fowl_n in_o the_o air_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o all_o herb_n and_o plant_n and_o god_n make_v he_o present_o fit_a for_o that_o rule_n and_o sovereignty_n which_o he_o give_v he_o over_o the_o creature_n god_n do_v also_o set_v his_o love_n upon_o he_o and_o crown_v he_o with_o glory_n and_o honour_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n 6._o david_n psal_n 8._o 4_o 5_o 6._o what_o be_v man_n that_o thou_o be_v mindful_a of_o he_o or_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o thou_o visite_a he_o for_o thou_o have_v make_v he_o a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n and_o have_v crown_v he_o with_o glory_n and_o honour_n thou_o ma●est_v he_o to_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n thou_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n for_o he_o be_v create_v in_o his_o full_a perfection_n fit_a to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o creature_n who_o god_n have_v make_v for_o his_o use_n and_o service_n as_o god_n do_v show_v his_o wonderful_a wisdom_n and_o power_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n because_o he_o make_v he_o such_o a_o excellent_a creature_n of_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o he_o now_o show_v no_o less_o power_n and_o wisdom_n in_o fashion_v he_o in_o the_o womb_n for_o thus_o say_v holy_a david_n 15._o david_n psal_n 1_o 39_o 1●_n 15._o i_o will_v praise_v thou_o for_o i_o be_o fearful_o and_o wonderful_o make_v marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n and_o that_o my_o soul_n know_v right_a well_o my_o substance_n be_v not_o hide_v from_o thou_o when_o i_o be_v make_v in_o secret_a and_o curious_o wrought_v in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o preacher_n also_o say_v 5_o say_v eccl._n 11._o 5_o that_o we_o know_v not_o how_o the_o bone_n do_v grow_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o she_o that_o be_v with_o child_n there_o be_v more_o wonder_n in_o man_n than_o there_o be_v part_n and_o member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o call_v for_o due_a consideration_n the_o eye_n be_v but_o a_o little_a member_n and_o yet_o the_o best_a oculist_n can_v find_v out_o all_o the_o wonder_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o who_o can_v discover_v the_o wind_n and_o turn_n of_o the_o brain_n how_o it_o work_v upon_o whatsoever_o it_o apprehend_v it_o be_v trouble_v with_o vision_n and_o dream_n in_o the_o night_n it_o be_v at_o no_o quiet_a all_o the_o day_n man_n have_v no_o command_n over_o his_o own_o thought_n but_o they_o fly_v swift_o from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n and_o they_o bring_v back_o to_o remembrance_n thing_n that_o be_v long_o pass_v and_o go_v so_o likewise_o there_o be_v such_o secret_a corner_n in_o the_o heart_n that_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o discover_v what_o be_v hide_v there_o god_n only_o that_o form_v it_o know_v the_o breadth_n and_o deepth_n of_o it_o his_o all-seeing_a eye_n can_v search_v into_o it_o and_o nothing_o that_o lurk_v there_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o he_o who_o can_v declare_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n in_o the_o faculty_n and_o endowment_n of_o his_o soul_n in_o the_o structure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o how_o he_o be_v fashion_v in_o the_o womb_n we_o may_v admire_v at_o these_o thing_n but_o we_o can_v comprehend_v they_o now_o let_v we_o bring_v down_o our_o thought_n
and_o cogitation_n to_o ruminate_v upon_o ourselves_o &_o to_o consider_v what_o our_o condition_n be_v in_o our_o first_o creation_n sure_o we_o be_v in_o adam_n loin_n when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o happy_a condition_n and_o we_o do_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o holiness_n he_o have_v the_o law_n of_o god_n imprint_v in_o his_o heart_n so_o have_v we_o he_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v it_o so_o be_v we_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v stamp_v upon_o his_o soul_n so_o it_o be_v upon_o we_o all_o which_o do_v afford_v we_o plenty_n of_o matter_n for_o our_o holy_a meditation_n how_o to_o glorify_v our_o good_a god_n &_o great_a creator_n with_o all_o our_o strength_n and_o with_o all_o our_o might_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o how_o to_o express_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o he_o by_o our_o continual_a care_n to_o obey_v his_o will_n and_o to_o walk_v before_o he_o in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n all_o our_o day_n wherefore_o now_o belove_v in_o christ_n let_v i_o thus_o expostulate_v with_o thou_o have_v god_n make_v thou_o a_o man●_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v make_v thou_o a_o brute_n beast_n or_o a_o worm_n 21._o worm_n isa_n 64._o 8_o rom._n 9_o 21._o for_o thou_o be_v in_o his_o hand_n as_o the_o clay_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o potter_n to_o be_v make_v a_o vessel_n unto_o honour_n or_o unto_o dishonour_n as_o his_o pleasure_n have_v god_n give_v thou_o a_o reasonable_a and_o immortal_a soul_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v give_v thou_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o beast_n which_o be_v mortal_a and_o perish_v with_o the_o the_o body_n have_v he_o fill_v thy_o soul_n with_o knowledge_n and_o with_o all_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o grace_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v make_v it_o empty_a and_o void_a of_o understanding_n and_o uncapable_a of_o instruction_n then_o let_v god_n be_v thy_o god_n and_o honour_n thou_o he_o let_v he_o be_v thy_o lord_n and_o serve_v and_o reverence_v he_o in_o sincerity_n of_o heart_n and_o in_o truth_n have_v god_n give_v thou_o dominion_n over_o all_o the_o creature_n here_o below_o to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o at_o thy_o will_n and_o pleasure_n why_o then_o can_v thou_o not_o govern_v thyself_o to_o keep_v upright_o and_o straight_o in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n why_o do_v thou_o not_o rule_v thy_o own_o passion_n but_o suffer_v they_o to_o break_v out_o into_o rage_n and_o fury_n upon_o every_o slight_a occasion_n why_o be_v thou_o carry_v with_o a_o full_a stream_n and_o with_o a_o unbridled_a liberty_n to_o carnal_a lust_n and_o sensuality_n do_v every_o creature_n serve_v and_o obey_v thou_o and_o will_v not_o thou_o serve_v thy_o god_n who_o make_v they_o serviceable_a ●nd_n obedient_a to_o thou_o do_v not_o they_o teach_v thou_o by_o their_o obedience_n to_o thy_o will_n that_o thou_o shall_v do_v the_o will_n and_o command_n of_o thy_o god_n 35._o god_n jer._n 35._o the_o lord_n will_v have_v his_o people_n to_o learn_v obedience_n of_o the_o rechabite_v the_o wise_a man_n send_v the_o sluggard_n to_o the_o ant_n to_o learn_v wisdom_n of_o she_o 8._o she_o prov._n 6._o 6_o 7_o 8._o go_v to_o the_o ant_n thou_o sluggard_n consider_v her_o way_n and_o be_v wise_a which_o have_v no_o g●ide_n overseer_n or_o ruler_n provide_v her_o meat_n in_o the_o summer_n and_o gather_v her_o food_n in_o the_o harvest_n thou_o do_v look_v for_o obedience_n of_o thy_o hire_a servant_n and_o will_v thou_o perform_v none_o unto_o god_n to_o who_o thou_o be_v bind_v in_o a_o far_o strong_a bond_n can_v thou_o work_v thy_o head_n and_o thy_o heart_n about_o thy_o worldly_a affair_n and_o can_v find_v no_o thought_n for_o heaven_n no_o time_n and_o no_o matter_n to_o meditate_v upon_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o thy_o soul_n oh_o let_v such_o gross_a stupidity_n be_v far_o from_o thou_o learn_v of_o the_o very_a creature_n to_o obey_v god_n with_o more_o willingness_n of_o mind_n and_o to_o be_v more_o zealous_a for_o his_o glory_n thou_o be_v create_v in_o perfect_a holiness_n and_o righteousness_n study_v therefore_o and_o labour_v for_o purity_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o do_v not_o stain_v and_o defile_v that_o which_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v keep_v holy_a and_o unblameable_a in_o his_o sight_n let_v the_o thought_n of_o thy_o mind_n and_o the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n be_v thus_o employ_v about_o thy_o creation_n and_o about_o the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o that_o thy_o affection_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n to_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o pious_a and_o religious_a duty_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n if_o we_o thus_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o we_o can_v want_v matter_n to_o magnify_v the_o wisdom_n &_o goodness_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v we_o be_v so_o fruitless_a &_o unprofitable_a in_o his_o service_n as_o natural_o we_o be_v for_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o we_o will_v constrain_v we_o to_o better_a obedience_n to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n man_n be_v create_v if_o we_o see_v a_o fair_a and_o stately_a building_n we_o will_v commend_v the_o builder_n and_o present_o conclude_v that_o he_o build_v it_o for_o his_o own_o habitation_n or_o for_o some_o honourable_a use_n and_o service_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o we_o shall_v see_v a_o admirable_a fabric_n of_o body_n which_o be_v rich_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v both_o within_o and_o without_o and_o we_o can_v but_o magnify_v our_o omnipotent_a creator_n and_o present_o conclude_v that_o sure_o god_n do_v make_v we_o such_o excellent_a creature_n and_o do_v enrich_v we_o with_o such_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o grace_n for_o some_o special_a end_n and_o purpose_n we_o be_v not_o make_v by_o ourselves_o we_o have_v no_o be_v nor_o beginning_n from_o ourselves_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o we_o to_o move_v towards_o our_o creation_n &_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o create_v for_o our-selve_n to_o follow_v our_o own_o pleasure_n to_o serve_v our_o own_o lust_n or_o to_o walk_v according_a to_o our_o own_o invention_n it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n to_o imagine_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o nothing_o or_o shall_v be_v accountable_a for_o nothing_o that_o we_o do_v in_o this_o life_n but_o that_o 12_o that_o job_n 11._o 12_o we_o be_v bear_v like_o a_o wild_a ass_n colt_n in_o the_o wilderness_n that_o have_v no_o master_n to_o tame_v he_o let_v such_o great_a folly_n and_o impiety_n be_v far_o from_o we_o for_o we_o be_v not_o bear_v to_o live_v as_o we_o 4._o we_o psal_n 12._o 4._o listen_v as_o if_o none_o shall_v control_v we_o and_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o lord_n over_o we_o but_o 9_o but_o eccl._n 11._o 9_o god_n shall_v bring_v we_o unto_o judgement_n for_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o we_o do_v 36_o do_v mat_n 22._o 36_o and_o we_o shall_v give_v account_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n of_o every_o idle_a word_n that_o we_o shall_v speak_v how_o careful_a then_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v so_o to_o live_v as_o not_o to_o dishonour_v god_n in_o any_o thing_n and_o how_o watchful_a shall_v we_o be_v over_o all_o our_o way_n because_o we_o must_v give_v such_o a_o strict_a account_n unto_o god_n at_o the_o last_o day_n if_o then_o we_o demand_v of_o ourselves_o between_o god_n and_o our_o own_o conscience_n wherefore_o and_o to_o what_o end_n we_o be_v make_v and_o send_v hither_o into_o this_o world_n what_o to_o do_v and_o wherein_o to_o bestow_v our_o time_n then_o our_o heart_n will_v tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v for_o no_o other_o cause_n or_o end_n but_o to_o serve_v god_n with_o pure_a affection_n in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n and_o after_o that_o service_n to_o enjoy_v eternal_a blessedness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v also_o to_o use_v those_o creature_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o that_o he_o may_v be_v honour_v and_o glorify_v thereby_o wherefore_o in_o whatsoever_o we_o bestow_v our_o time_n if_o it_o be_v not_o conduce_v and_o profitable_a to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n it_o be_v vanity_n and_o lose_a labour_n it_o will_v give_v we_o no_o ease_n or_o relief_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o it_o will_v bring_v no_o comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n likewise_o if_o we_o be_v immoderate_a in_o our_o desire_n after_o earthly_a thing_n though_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o lawful_a and_o good_a and_o if_o we_o covet_v more_o riches_n honour_n and_o worldly_a preferment_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o than_o shall_v be_v best_a to_o enable_v we_o in_o the_o true_a religious_a service_n of_o god_n and_o to_o further_a the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o be_v then_o out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n and_o we_o run_v from_o the_o
prize_v any_o thing_n above_o grace_n or_o love_v any_o thing_n more_o than_o thou_o love_v christ_n the_o love_n of_o god_n can_v dwell_v in_o thou_o and_o spiritual_a grace_n can_v be_v wrought_v in_o thou_o until_o thy_o heart_n be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v it_o which_o must_v be_v by_o the_o powerful_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o danger_n of_o delay_n in_o seek_v grace_n there_o be_v now_o great_a need_n that_o we_o do_v serious_o bethink_v ourselves_o and_o that_o our_o heart_n do_v faithful_o meditate_v upon_o it_o what_o danger_n we_o may_v incur_v and_o run_v into_o if_o we_o do_v not_o accept_v of_o grace_n when_o god_n do_v offer_v it_o if_o we_o do_v not_o come_v to_o god_n when_o he_o call_v nor_o do_v what_o he_o command_v at_o his_o own_o appoint_a time_n also_o how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o delay_v our_o repentance_n and_o the_o reformation_n of_o our_o sinful_a life_n from_o day_n to_o day_n and_o to_o cover_v our_o delay_n with_o this_o vain_a pretence_n that_o to_o morrow_n we_o will_v perform_v that_o which_o god_n command_v and_o then_o we_o will_v amend_v all_o that_o be_v amiss_o and_o thus_o we_o put_v off_o this_o precious_a time_n of_o grace_n and_o thus_o we_o defer_v our_o repentance_n for_o our_o sin_n until_o god_n who_o be_v the_o sole_a commander_n of_o time_n do_v shut_v we_o out_o of_o all_o time_n to_o the_o utter_a perdition_n of_o our_o poor_a soul_n which_o he_o may_v just_o do_v if_o we_o thus_o abuse_v the_o singular_a benefit_n of_o time_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o here_o for_o the_o gain_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n this_o be_v a_o dangerous_a and_o a_o cunning_a deceit_n which_o the_o devil_n use_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o destruction_n if_o he_o can_v persuade_v we_o to_o make_v delay_n in_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n and_o in_o do_v that_o which_o god_n command_v for_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o shall_v incur_v the_o wrath_n and_o high_a displeasure_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v in_o danger_n our_o repentance_n and_o conversion_n unto_o god_n and_o consequent_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n the_o devil_n know_v that_o one_o sin_n will_v draw_v on_o another_o that_o custom_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o a_o habit_n of_o sin_v and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o tender_a of_o grace_n to_o day_n may_v not_o have_v the_o time_n or_o the_o mean_n of_o it_o to_o morrow_n and_o he_o that_o refuse_v to_o repent_v to_o day_n may_v be_v more_o indispose_v for_o it_o to_o morrow_n also_o he_o know_v how_o hard_o it_o be_v to_o leave_v old_a sin_n and_o and_o that_o god_n may_v just_o withdraw_v the_o comfort_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o may_v deny_v we_o his_o grace_n if_o we_o do_v abuse_v his_o goodness_n and_o love_a kindness_n to_o we_o by_o these_o our_o delay_n in_o grace_n we_o do_v exasperate_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n to_o punish_v we_o aod_v thereby_o we_o heap_v vengeance_n upon_o our_o own_o head_n 5._o head_n rom._n 2._o 5._o and_o we_o do_v treasure_n up_o wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n likewise_o he_o know_v how_o uncertain_a our_o life_n be_v and_o the_o many_o and_o perilous_a chance_n that_o may_v come_v to_o hinder_v we_o from_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n in_o time_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o persuade_v we_o to_o defer_v a_o little_a and_o then_o a_o little_a more_o and_o that_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v have_v better_a occasion_n and_o fit_a opportunity_n to_o do_v that_o which_o god_n command_v then_o for_o the_o present_a we_o have_v if_o we_o continue_v in_o sin_n without_o repentance_n the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v more_o establish_v and_o confirm_v in_o we_o the_o good_a inclination_n of_o our_o will_n be_v more_o weaken_a and_o pervert_v the_o faculty_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v more_o corrupt_v our_o understanding_n be_v more_o darken_a and_o our_o unruly_a passion_n be_v more_o strengthen_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o reason_n and_o hard_a to_o be_v repress_v by_o continuance_n of_o time_n than_o they_o be_v before_o wherefore_o we_o can_v be_v safe_a from_o the_o evil_n of_o those_o subtle_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n unless_o we_o shroud_v ourselves_o under_o the_o protection_n of_o god_n by_o prayer_n and_o keep_v our_o soul_n close_o unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o than_o he_o will_v preserve_v we_o from_o the_o danger_n of_o those_o snare_n and_o he_o will_v keep_v we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o delude_v with_o his_o enchantment_n to_o lose_v the_o opportunity_n of_o grace_n that_o god_n do_v give_v we_o for_o it_o be_v grace_v only_o that_o do_v keep_v we_o from_o the_o habit_n of_o sin_n that_o no_o sin_n shall_v be_v root_v in_o we_o it_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o grace_n that_o give_v we_o power_n over_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o keep_v we_o from_o the_o delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o therefore_o if_o god_n withdraw_v his_o assist_a grace_n from_o we_o we_o have_v then_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v preserve_v from_o those_o dangerous_a deceit_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o to_o make_v the_o way_n of_o virtue_n and_o of_o godliness_n easy_a to_o we_o if_o we_o have_v be_v delude_v by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o the_o allurement_n of_o the_o world_n or_o by_o the_o enticement_n of_o the_o flesh_n to_o continue_v long_o in_o a_o sinful_a course_n of_o life_n and_o to_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v or_o to_o delay_v our_o repentance_n and_o turn_v unto_o god_n to_o the_o great_a hazard_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n let_v our_o heart_n melt_v into_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o our_o long_a delay_n in_o seek_v the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o for_o lose_v so_o much_o time_n without_o the_o gain_n of_o some_o grace_n for_o the_o good_a of_o our_o soul_n that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o if_o god_n shall_v make_v our_o life_n but_o like_o the_o short_a day_n of_o the_o year_n yet_o we_o shall_v discover_v too_o much_o gross_a ingratitude_n to_o he_o if_o we_o will_v not_o afford_v he_o one_o hour_n of_o that_o day_n for_o his_o honour_n and_o glory_n then_o much_o more_o be_v our_o unthankfulness_n towards_o he_o if_o our_o life_n be_v lengthen_v out_o to_o the_o long_a day_n and_o if_o we_o do_v also_o enjoy_v the_o sunshine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o have_v no_o care_n to_o seek_v his_o face_n or_o to_o gain_v his_o favour_n until_o the_o twilight_n of_o that_o day_n when_o sickness_n and_o infirmity_n will_v disable_v we_o and_o when_o decrepit_a old_a age_n do_v seize_v upon_o we_o how_o can_v we_o expect_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v of_o our_o sour_a winter_n fruit_n when_o we_o deny_v he_o our_o sweet_a and_o pleasant_a summer_n fruit_n what_o fruit_n can_v the_o seed_n of_o grace_n produce_v when_o our_o heart_n have_v be_v overgrow_v with_o brier_n and_o thorn_n ah_o our_o whole_a life_n can_v we_o spend_v all_o the_o oil_n in_o our_o lamp_n in_o seek_v for_o earthly_a thing_n and_o provide_v none_o to_o have_v our_o lamp_n burn_v that_o we_o may_v attend_v upon_o the_o bridegroom_n when_o he_o come_v 25._o come_v mat._n 25._o the_o foolish_a virgin_n in_o the_o gospel_n do_v thus_o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o bridegroom_n come_v they_o be_v not_o ready_a and_o go_v not_o in_o with_o he_o to_o the_o marriage_n and_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v we_o shall_v therefore_o watch_v for_o we_o know_v neither_o the_o day_n nor_o the_o hour_n wherein_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v if_o we_o do_v serious_o think_v upon_o the_o many_o and_o great_a benefit_n that_o we_o have_v already_o receive_v from_o god_n and_o yet_o we_o do_v hope_n for_o and_o expect_v much_o more_o even_o eternal_a happiness_n hereafter_o we_o can_v but_o be_v more_o careful_a to_o labour_v for_o true_a save_a grace_n in_o the_o best_a part_n of_o our_o day_n without_o which_o we_o can_v attain_v to_o it_o and_o not_o to_o spend_v our_o time_n vain_o in_o seek_v the_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n reserve_v the_o last_o and_o worst_a part_n of_o our_o life_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o god_n will_v then_o accept_v it_o if_o god_n do_v give_v we_o grace_v then_o to_o repent_v for_o repentance_n be_v absolute_o his_o own_o gift_n yet_o we_o must_v then_o lament_v and_o bewail_v these_o dangerous_a delay_n which_o we_o have_v make_v for_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o we_o prolong_v our_o return_v unto_o god_n the_o more_o we_o increase_v our_o sin_n and_o so_o much_o the_o great_a will_v be_v our_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n in_o our_o repentance_n if_o it_o be_v true_a and_o sound_v also_o the_o amendment_n of_o
christ_n be_v above_o all_o humane_a wisdom_n and_o therefore_o 2._o therefore_o 1_o cor._n 2._o 1_o 2._o paul_n come_v not_o to_o the_o corinthian_n with_o excellency_n of_o speech_n or_o of_o wisdom_n to_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n for_o he_o determine_v not_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n among_o they_o save_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v wherefore_o if_o we_o can_v gain_v this_o heavenly_a knowledge_n by_o our_o study_n and_o meditation_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v enough_o to_o make_v our_o soul_n gracious_a here_o and_o eternal_o bless_v hereafter_o of_o christ_n prophetical_a office_n now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o several_a office_n of_o christ_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v draw_v some_o profitable_a matter_n for_o our_o instruction_n and_o for_o our_o comfort_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n god_n ordain_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n according_a as_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o moses_n 18._o moses_n deut._n 18._o 18._o i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o a_o prophet_n from_o among_o their_o brethren_n like_v unto_o thou_o and_o will_v put_v my_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o he_o shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o i_o shall_v command_v he_o this_o be_v that_o great_a prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n who_o have_v not_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n by_o divine_a revelation_n as_o all_o the_o prophet_n have_v but_o it_o be_v inherent_a in_o he_o and_o he_o have_v it_o from_o his_o own_o divine_a nature_n and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o christ_n give_v some_o manifestation_n of_o this_o his_o office_n by_o way_n of_o pprophecy_n 21._o pprophecy_n luc._n 21._o for_o he_o foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o temple_n 44._o temple_n luke_n 19_o 43_o 44._o the_o great_a desolation_n that_o shall_v short_o come_v upon_o jerusalem_n 25_o jerusalem_n lu._n 21._o 25_o and_o also_o the_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n likewise_o he_o foretell_v 19_o foretell_v mat._n 20._o 18_o 19_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o himself_o in_o his_o passion_n 34_o passion_n mat._n 26._o 34_o and_o how_o shameful_o peter_n shall_v deny_v he_o and_o not_o a_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n can_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o must_v be_v fulfil_v in_o due_a time_n because_o 5_o because_o joh._n 14._o 5_o he_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n do_v speak_v it_o he_o 25._o he_o joh._n 2._o 24_o 25._o do_v know_v the_o secret_n of_o every_o man_n heart_n he_o know_v who_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o who_o do_v not_o and_o also_o what_o mischief_n his_o enemy_n intend_v against_o he_o for_o nothing_o can_v be_v hide_v from_o he_o christ_n have_v give_v some_o glimpse_n of_o his_o prophetical_a gift_n to_o his_o minister_n to_o foresee_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o will_v fall_v upon_o a_o nation_n or_o people_n if_o they_o be_v above_o measure_n sinful_a and_o will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v nor_o bring_v to_o repentance_n but_o christ_n by_o his_o own_o preach_n have_v now_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n ordinary_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o every_o word_n which_o christ_n have_v speak_v must_v be_v fulfil_v how_o ought_v we_o to_o fear_n and_o tremble_v at_o his_o threaten_n how_o careful_a shall_v we_o be_v to_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o he_o by_o sound_a repentance_n and_o turn_n unto_o god_n before_o he_o put_v in_o execution_n what_o he_o have_v threaten_v also_o how_o comfortable_a be_v his_o promise_n which_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v be_v perform_v if_o we_o rest_v upon_o they_o by_o faith_n how_o can_v any_o affliction_n or_o sorrow_n tire_v if_o we_o rest_v upon_o a_o promise_n of_o succour_n from_o christ_n and_o how_o can_v we_o despair_v of_o our_o salvation_n if_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o christ_n have_v perfect_o wrought_v our_o redemption_n and_o have_v make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n his_o father_n also_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n do_v see_v by_o his_o divine_a nature_n into_o the_o secret_n of_o all_o heart_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v vigilant_a and_o careful_a to_o keep_v our_o heart_n cleanse_v and_o purify_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o daily_a renew_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n that_o no_o darling_n sin_n may_v be_v cherish_v there_o for_o he_o can_v see_v it_o and_o find_v it_o out_o but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a end_n that_o christ_n do_v intend_v in_o this_o his_o office_n for_o he_o be_v anoint_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o his_o baptism_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n according_a to_o this_o pprophecy_n of_o he_o 18._o he_o isa_n 61._o luc._n 4._o 18._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v i_o to_o preach_v good_a tiding_n unto_o the_o meek_a he_o have_v send_v i_o to_o bind_v up_o the_o break_a heart_a to_o proclaim_v liberty_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o the_o open_n of_o the_o prison_n to_o they_o that_o be_v bind_v to_o proclaim_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n christ_n do_v execute_v the_o part_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o ministry_n and_o 29._o and_o mat._n 7._o 28_o 29._o the_o people_n be_v astonish_v at_o his_o doctrine_n for_o 32_o for_o luc._n 4._o 32_o his_o word_n be_v with_o power_n and_o he_o teach_v they_o as_o one_o have_v authority_n his_o whole_a doctrine_n be_v pure_a and_o divine_a it_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n will_n and_o to_o the_o regulate_v of_o our_o sinful_a life_n according_a to_o god_n commandment_n which_o he_o comprehend_v in_o this_o short_a sum_n 39_o sum_n mat._n 22_o 37._o 39_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o l●rd_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o christ_n do_v right_o interpret_v the_o moral_a law_n and_o free_v it_o from_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o the_o pharisee_n for_o whereas_o that_o command_v only_o external_a obedience_n to_o the_o commandment_n according_a to_o their_o interpretation_n of_o they_o as_o not_o to_o kill_v not_o to_o commit_v actual_a adultery_n and_o the_o like_a 5._o like_a mat._n 5._o his_o doctrine_n add_v internal_a observation_n as_o not_o to_o speak_v angry_a word_n to_o our_o neighbour_n hurt_n not_o to_o lust_n and_o the_o like_a and_o whereas_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n command_v to_o offer_v up_o a_o sheep_n or_o a_o ox_n for_o our_o sin_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n do_v instruct_v we_o to_o offer_v up_o a_o break_a and_o a_o contrite_a heart_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o to_o purpose_n and_o resolve_v the_o reformation_n of_o our_o sinful_a life_n christ_n doctrine_n tend_v whole_o to_o the_o perfect_a service_n of_o god_n to_o draw_v our_o mind_n from_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o set_v our_o affection_n upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o depression_n of_o our_o spiritual_a pride_n to_o the_o mortification_n of_o our_o sinful_a appetite_n and_o to_o the_o stir_v up_o of_o our_o heavenly_a cogitation_n to_o peace_n of_o conscience_n tranquillity_n of_o mind_n purity_n of_o body_n and_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o brief_a his_o doctrine_n do_v contain_v whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o he_o do_v reveal_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a so_o his_o whole_a life_n and_o conversation_n be_v exact_o suitable_a thereunto_o for_o it_o be_v most_o upright_o and_o holy_a and_o a_o lively_a table_n wherein_o be_v express_v the_o perfection_n of_o his_o doctrine_n this_o may_v teach_v all_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n to_o frame_v their_o life_n according_a to_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o their_o good_a example_n may_v confirm_v their_o doctrine_n and_o be_v a_o pattern_n for_o other_o to_o follow_v christ_n do_v still_o execute_v this_o part_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n in_o his_o minister_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n and_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n do_v also_o join_v with_o their_o continual_a preach_n to_o make_v it_o powerful_a for_o edification_n and_o instruction_n and_o effectual_a to_o salvation_n wherefore_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n must_v be_v sanctify_v and_o season_v with_o grace_n and_o our_o ear_n must_v be_v spiritual_o bore_v when_o we_o come_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v and_o we_o must_v faithful_o pray_v that_o his_o spirit_n will_v accompany_v the_o
conceive_v no_o hope_n of_o forgiuness_n without_o christ_n for_o christ_n only_o must_v procure_v our_o pardon_n and_o bring_v we_o again_o into_o the_o love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n of_o christ_n kingly_a office_n god_n do_v likewise_o ordain_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o king_n according_a as_o he_o speak_v by_o david_n ●_o david_n ps_n 2._o 6_o ●_o i_o have_v set_v my_o king_n upon_o my_o holy_a hill_n of_o zion_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o the_o angel_n also_o that_o be_v send_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n tell_v she_o 33._o she_o luc._n 1._o 31_o 32_o 33._o that_o she_o shall_v conceive_v in_o her_o womb_n and_o bring_v forth_o a_o son_n and_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n who_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a and_o the_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n and_o he_o shall_v reign_v over_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n for_o ever_o and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n but_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n upon_o earth_n but_o to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a king_n to_o over-rule_v and_o subdue_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o rule_v and_o reign_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o his_o elect_a by_o his_o spirit_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v of_o pilate_n 36_o pilate_n joh._n 28._o 36_o my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n notwithstanding_o he_o do_v show_v some_o apparent_a sign_n of_o his_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n when_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n 27._o earth_n mar._n 8._o 27._o for_o he_o still_v the_o boisterous_a wind_n and_o rage_a sea_n by_o his_o command_n 5._o command_n mar._n 5._o he_o cast_v out_o devil_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n 6._o authority_n mat._n 28._o 6._o he_o triumph_v victorious_o over_o death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a 8._o dead_a act._n 1._o 8._o and_o by_o his_o glorious_a ascension_n up_o into_o heaven_n christ_n be_v a_o king_n from_o eternity_n 18._o eternity_n col._n ●_o 18._o and_o god_n make_v he_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n at_o his_o ascension_n in_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o he_o be_v our_o mediator_n god_n and_o man_n to_o preserve_v and_o defend_v it_o from_o all_o adversary_n power_n and_o to_o rule_v and_o govern_v it_o by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n in_o righteousness_n and_o in_o truth_n thus_o do_v christ_n still_o execute_v his_o kingly_a office_n by_o set_v up_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o restrain_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o by_o give_v we_o a_o gracious_a ability_n to_o stand_v against_o all_o his_o temptation_n and_o wicked_a suggestion_n also_o christ_n by_o his_o regal_a power_n in_o we_o do_v weaken_v and_o beat_v down_o the_o power_n of_o all_o our_o sinful_a lust_n and_o evil_a concupiscence_n and_o of_o whatsoever_o rebell_v against_o his_o spirit_n and_o he_o bow_v our_o will_n by_o the_o powerful_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o yield_v he_o ready_a obedience_n as_o our_o king_n and_o governor_n and_o so_o to_o prepare_v we_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o at_o length_n he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o his_o eternal_a kingdom_n of_o glory_n christ_n be_v 23_o be_v eze._n 7._o 22_o 23_o that_o high_a branch_n of_o that_o cedar_n speak_v of_o by_o the_o prophet_n who_o come_v of_o that_o holy_a line_n by_o succession_n from_o adam_n to_o abraham_n and_o so_o to_o david_n and_o then_o to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o that_o tree_n but_o without_o sin_n he_o do_v god_n crop_v off_o by_o his_o death_n and_o do_v plant_v it_o again_o at_o his_o ascension_n upon_o a_o high_a mountain_n and_o eminent_a when_o he_o make_v he_o the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n which_o become_v a_o goodly_a cedar_n by_o the_o promulgation_n of_o his_o gospel_n under_o who_o bough_n every_o true_a believer_n shall_v have_v protection_n from_o danger_n comfort_n in_o their_o tribulation_n and_o refreshment_n for_o their_o deject_a spirit_n and_o sorrowful_a soul_n none_o be_v exempt_v from_o christ_n but_o all_o fowl_n of_o every_o wing_n both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n shall_v dwell_v in_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o branch_n of_o this_o cedar_n they_o shall_v be_v comfort_v and_o protect_v 7._o protect_v 1_o king_n 19_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o as_o elijah_n be_v from_o the_o rage_n and_o fury_n of_o jezebell_n when_o he_o sit_v under_o the_o juniper_n tree_n they_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o eminent_a danger_n 4._o danger_n judg._n 4._o as_o deborah_n be_v from_o siseraes_n great_a host_n 22_o host_n dan._n 6._o 22_o and_o as_o daniel_n be_v from_o the_o lion_n and_o as_o many_o more_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v be_v preserve_v in_o their_o great_a peril_n john_n call_v this_o goodly_a cedar_n 2._o cedar_n rev._n 22._o 2._o the_o tree_n of_o life_n who_o leaf_n be_v for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o nation_n for_o they_o have_v a_o sovereign_a virtue_n to_o heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n of_o our_o soul_n if_o we_o can_v right_o apply_v to_o ourselves_o by_o a_o true_a faith_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n crucify_v for_o we_o we_o need_v not_o then_o fear_v the_o power_n or_o malice_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n or_o the_o danger_n that_o be_v incident_a to_o we_o in_o this_o life_n if_o we_o can_v shroud_v ourselves_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o tree_n here_o be_v great_a consolation_n for_o our_o poor_a soul_n against_o the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n the_o fierceness_n of_o god_n wrath_n the_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o against_o the_o devil_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n because_o christ_n be_v our_o king_n our_o head_n and_o a_o tree_n of_o life_n to_o we_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o misery_n to_o strengthen_v we_o against_o all_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o cure_v we_o of_o all_o the_o wound_n that_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n to_o shelter_v we_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o eternal_a life_n though_o 16_o though_o rev._n ●8_o 16_o christ_n be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o have_v the_o command_n over_o all_o create_a power_n and_o principality_n yet_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o do_v vail_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o deity_n with_o our_o nature_n and_o lay_v aside_o his_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n 8_o authority_n phil._n 3._o 7_o 8_o and_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n he_o humble_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o more_o he_o suffer_v the_o more_o do_v his_o innocency_n appear_v and_o the_o great_a be_v his_o honour_n in_o the_o conquest_n that_o he_o get_v over_o all_o his_o enemy_n that_o he_o may_v strengthen_v we_o in_o our_o suffering_n with_o assure_a hope_n of_o a_o glorious_a victory_n over_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n though_o sometime_o we_o may_v be_v foil_v by_o they_o and_o also_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o sadness_n of_o spirit_n and_o in_o whatsoever_o we_o shall_v suffer_v for_o his_o name_n sake_n it_o be_v no_o dishonour_n to_o we_o to_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o christ_n our_o head_n though_o it_o be_v as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o his_o humiliation_n when_o he_o be_v make_v the_o scorn_n of_o man_n 12._o man_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 12._o for_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v also_o reign_v with_o he_o he_o have_v go_v before_o we_o in_o the_o same_o step_n to_o make_v the_o rugged_a path_n of_o affliction_n plain_a and_o smooth_a to_o we_o 7._o we_o jam._n 4._o 7._o if_o we_o resist_v the_o devil_n with_o the_o shield_n of_o faith_n christ_n our_o king_n will_v make_v he_o fly_v from_o we_o if_o we_o cease_v not_o to_o labour_v and_o strive_v against_o our_o sin_n and_o corruption_n though_o our_o natural_a strength_n can_v overcome_v they_o yet_o christ_n will_v give_v we_o strength_n of_o grace_n in_o his_o good_a time_n to_o subdue_v they_o for_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o enemy_n to_o overthrow_v his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n if_o once_o it_o be_v plant_v in_o our_o heart_n but_o he_o will_v keep_v and_o defend_v it_o from_o the_o spoiler_n and_o though_o the_o devil_n do_v take_v advantage_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o thereby_o seek_v to_o root_v out_o that_o spiritual_a seed_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o we_o yet_o he_o shall_v never_o prevail_v for_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o immortal_a foundation_n which_o can_v
from_o we_o if_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o god_n good_a pleasure_n to_o who_o holy_a will_v we_o must_v always_o submit_v our_o desire_n for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n to_o deliver_v we_o it_o will_v be_v his_o will_n to_o comfort_v we_o if_o we_o do_v patient_o attend_v his_o appoint_a time_n this_o be_v holy_a david_n counsel_n 14_o counsel_n ps_n 27._o 14_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n and_o he_o shall_v strengthen_v thy_o heart_n wait_v i_o say_v on_o the_o lord_n and_o again_o he_o say_v 8._o say_v ps_n 34_o 8._o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o trust_v in_o he_o if_o we_o thus_o wait_v on_o the_o lord_n he_o will_v also_o wait_v to_o do_v we_o good_a for_o thus_o the_o prophet_n express_v the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n to_o his_o people_n 18_o people_n be_v 30._o 18_o and_o therefore_o will_v the_o lord_n wait_v that_o he_o may_v be_v gracious_a unto_o you_o what_o can_v more_o strong_o move_v we_o to_o wait_v patient_o the_o lord_n time_n when_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o send_v we_o comfort_n in_o our_o sorrow_n and_o deliverance_n out_o of_o they_o 15_o they_o psa_fw-la 50._o 15_o god_n have_v also_o command_v we_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o our_o trouble_n and_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o deliver_v we_o and_o as_o he_o have_v command_v the_o one_o so_o he_o will_v never_o fail_v to_o perform_v the_o other_o but_o when_o the_o lord_n give_v this_o cup_n to_o the_o wicked_a 28._o wicked_a jer._n 25._o 25._o 28._o it_o be_v the_o wine_n cup_n of_o his_o fury_n to_o they_o for_o their_o destruction_n and_o though_o they_o refuse_v to_o take_v it_o yet_o they_o shall_v certain_o drink_v it_o sometime_o the_o lord_n make_v his_o own_o people_n drink_v very_o deep_a of_o this_o cup_n for_o thus_o the_o prophet_n bewail_v the_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n of_o jerusalem_n 17._o jerusalem_n isa_n 51._o 17._o awake_v awake_a stand_v up_o o_o jerusalem_n which_o have_v drink_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o cup_n of_o his_o fury_n thou_o have_v drunken_a the_o dregs_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o tremble_a and_o wring_v they_o out_o but_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n will_v take_v a_o time_n to_o plead_v their_o cause_n when_o they_o repent_v and_o forsake_v their_o sin_n and_o turn_v unto_o he_o 23._o he_o be_v 51._o 22_o 23._o behold_v say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v take_v out_o of_o thy_o hand_n the_o cup_n of_o tremble_a even_o the_o dregs_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o my_o sury_n thou_o shall_v no_o more_o drink_v it_o again_o but_o i_o will_v put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o they_o that_o afflict_v thou_o if_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o his_o servant_n it_o will_v be_v but_o for_o a_o night_n joy_n will_v come_v in_o the_o morning_n if_o he_o do_v suffer_v the_o wicked_a to_o afflict_v they_o it_o will_v be_v for_o a_o short_a time_n and_o then_o he_o will_v give_v they_o a_o double_a measure_n of_o consolation_n for_o their_o sorrow_n and_o at_o length_n will_v pour_v out_o his_o fury_n in_o full_a measure_n upon_o their_o enemy_n though_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o christ_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n shall_v drink_v this_o cup_n and_o the_o very_a dregs_o of_o it_o which_o bring_v he_o so_o low_o in_o his_o own_o apprehension_n as_o if_o god_n have_v forsake_v he_o yet_o his_o divine_a nature_n do_v so_o uphold_v he_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o whereby_o he_o have_v make_v that_o cup_n mild_a and_o gentle_a to_o we_o for_o all_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o must_v taste_v of_o this_o cup_n in_o this_o life_n and_o as_o peter_n say_v if_o judgement_n first_o begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o righteous_a scarce_o be_v save_v where_o shall_v the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o sinner_n appear_v if_o god_n give_v this_o cup_n of_o tremble_v to_o his_o own_o dear_a son_n who_o be_v full_a of_o all_o good_a sure_o than_o he_o will_v not_o spare_v we_o that_o natural_o be_v dry_a barren_a and_o fruitless_a wherefore_o look_v narrow_o to_o thy_o way_n and_o walk_v circumspect_o before_o thy_o god_n for_o if_o thy_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n break_v upon_o thou_o and_o thou_o continue_v in_o they_o without_o repentance_n god_n will_v put_v his_o cup_n of_o fury_n in_o thy_o hand_n and_o thou_o must_v certain_o drink_v it_o which_o will_v make_v thy_o heart_n to_o quake_v and_o tremble_v when_o thou_o do_v taste_v it_o 6._o it_o ●an_v 5._o 5_o 6._o king_n belshazzar_n countenance_n be_v change_v and_o his_o thought_n trouble_v he_o so_o that_o the_o joint_n of_o his_o loin_n be_v loose_v and_o his_o knee_n smite_v one_o against_o another_o when_o he_o do_v but_o see_v the_o hand-writing_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o wall_n against_o he_o how_o much_o then_o will_v thou_o tremble_v that_o must_v drink_v the_o dregs_o of_o this_o cup_n if_o thou_o go_v on_o still_o in_o a_o rebellious_a way_n against_o god_n without_o repentance_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v seek_v the_o lord_n betimes_o and_o meet_v he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o with_o a_o penitent_a heart_n he_o will_v be_v find_v of_o thou_o and_o this_o cup_n shall_v either_o pass_v from_o thou_o or_o else_o it_o shall_v be_v temper_v to_o thy_o strength_n that_o thou_o may_v drink_v it_o with_o comfort_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o our_o saviour_n bloody_a sweat_n we_o shall_v see_v the_o anguish_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o with_o what_o violence_n the_o devil_n do_v assault_v he_o thus_o terrible_a be_v his_o agony_n because_o the_o great_a dragon_n that_o old_a serpent_n the_o devil_n do_v set_v upon_o he_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o cast_v his_o venomous_a and_o poison_a dart_n to_o wound_v his_o very_a soul_n if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a and_o to_o sting_v he_o unto_o death_n though_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o wicked_a instrument_n be_v suffer_v at_o last_o to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n yet_o the_o venom_n of_o their_o malice_n can_v not_o hurt_v he_o for_o as_o he_o live_v a_o innocent_a lamb_n without_o any_o spot_n or_o stain_v of_o sin_n so_o he_o die_v a_o sacrifice_n without_o blemish_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o by_o his_o death_n he_o do_v vanquish_v sin_n which_o be_v the_o sting_n of_o death_n and_o by_o his_o resurrection_n he_o do_v vanquish_v the_o devil_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o also_o he_o subdue_v all_o the_o power_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o perfect_o finish_v the_o whole_a work_n of_o man_n redemption_n in_o this_o agony_n christ_n find_v the_o burden_n of_o sin_n so_o heavy_a upon_o he_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n so_o strong_a against_o he_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v heavy_a even_o to_o the_o death_n what_o can_v be_v want_v to_o add_v sorrow_n to_o his_o soul_n when_o the_o great_a dragon_n of_o hell_n be_v unchained_a and_o let_v loose_a upon_o he_o yet_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o deity_n he_o overcome_v he_o though_o he_o be_v force_v to_o a_o bloody_a sweat_n if_o the_o beginning_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n be_v thus_o bitter_a and_o painful_a to_o he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o full_a strength_n of_o body_n how_o terrible_a be_v it_o afterward_o when_o his_o body_n be_v faint_a and_o weak_a and_o his_o spirit_n almost_o spend_v if_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o own_o power_n do_v thus_o afflict_v his_o soul_n how_o be_v he_o afflict_v when_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v torture_v and_o torment_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o cruel_a instrument_n in_o his_o great_a weakness_n wherefore_o if_o he_o do_v sweat_v drop_n of_o blood_n for_o our_o sake_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o we_o to_o take_v no_o pain_n in_o his_o service_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o name_n and_o to_o suffer_v nothing_o for_o his_o glory_n we_o can_v sweat_v abundant_o about_o our_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n and_o about_o our_o affair_n in_o this_o world_n but_o we_o can_v feel_v no_o warmth_n of_o holy_a zeal_n in_o our_o affection_n towards_o he_o neither_o will_v we_o take_v any_o pain_n about_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o will_v not_o suffer_v our_o own_o name_n or_o credit_n to_o be_v blemish_v but_o we_o hear_v the_o sacred_a name_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n dishonour_v and_o blaspheme_v we_o be_v not_o move_v at_o it_o but_o we_o can_v suffer_v it_o well_o enough_o also_o we_o can_v profess_v his_o name_n when_o there_o be_v no_o opposition_n against_o it_o but_o if_o cloud_n or_o storm_n of_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n do_v arise_v upon_o we_o for_o his_o sake_n we_o be_v ready_a quick_o to_o shrink_v from_o
also_o defend_v we_o from_o all_o the_o delusion_n of_o worldly_a vanity_n and_o of_o our_o own_o sinful_a lust_n howsoever_o the_o world_n the_o flesh_n or_o the_o devil_n shall_v tempt_v we_o for_o it_o will_v preserve_v and_o keep_v we_o from_o the_o evil_n of_o their_o temptation_n consider_v now_o that_o god_n who_o can_v bring_v good_a out_o of_o evil_a and_o can_v make_v all_o thing_n work_v together_o for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o servant_n make_v peter_n fall_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o exceed_v great_a good_a unto_o he_o for_o thereby_o he_o do_v see_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o presumption_n also_o unsuspected_a danger_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o security_n he_o do_v see_v the_o malice_n and_o subtlety_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o make_v he_o more_o careful_a and_o watchful_a over_o himself_o and_o he_o be_v the_o better_a able_a by_o his_o own_o experience_n to_o comfort_n and_o strengthen_v his_o brethren_n in_o their_o slip_n and_o fall_v but_o above_o all_o it_o make_v he_o love_n christ_n his_o dear_a lord_n with_o more_o int●re_a affection_n and_o to_o stick_v close_o unto_o he_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o to_o be_v more_o courageous_a in_o his_o cause_n thus_o god_n turn_v the_o evil_n which_o the_o devil_n intend_v for_o peter_n hurt_n and_o make_v it_o conduce_v to_o h●s_n great_a good_a and_o thus_o also_o will_v he_o turn_v away_o the_o evil_a of_o our_o sin_n and_o of_o our_o temptation_n and_o the_o evil_a of_o our_o sorrow_n and_o suffering_n and_o will_v make_v they_o advance_v his_o own_o glory_n and_o to_o be_v profitable_a to_o we_o if_o we_o can_v bathe_v our_o sin_n in_o our_o penitential_a tear_n as_o peter_n do_v now_o we_o come_v to_o consider_v more_o full_o how_o the_o devil_n go_v to_o work_v to_o make_v peter_n fall_v so_o fearful_o sure_o the_o instrument_n which_o he_o use_v be_v but_o the_o high_a priest_n servant_n the_o word_n which_o they_o speak_v to_o peter_n be_v of_o no_o great_a consequence_n they_o be_v neither_o threaten_n nor_o terrify_v which_o in_o themselves_o can_v not_o so_o much_o affright_v he_o neither_o be_v it_o only_o the_o sudden_a fear_n of_o danger_n or_o those_o wicked_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n though_o they_o do_v work_n much_o upon_o he_o to_o make_v he_o doubt_v of_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n now_o he_o see_v he_o so_o contemptible_o use_v of_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n that_o make_v peter_n fall_v so_o dangerous_o for_o he_o be_v in_o more_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n but_o a_o little_a before_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o daunt_v but_o the_o devil_n know_v that_o peter_n be_v of_o a_o hot_a fiery_a spirit_n and_o violent_a in_o his_o passion_n which_o will_v easy_o make_v he_o say_v he_o know_v not_o what_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v chief_o work_v upon_o they_o which_o will_v transport_v he_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o his_o reason_n and_o understanding_n and_o also_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o grace_n and_o godliness_n all_o that_o go_v before_o be_v but_o as_o engine_n of_o war_n which_o he_o fit_v and_o prepated_a for_o this_o great_a battery_n by_o his_o suggestion_n he_o do_v undermine_v peter_n faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o christ_n to_o make_v way_n that_o fear_n may_v take_v the_o great_a hold_n upon_o he_o that_o so_o he_o may_v by_o degree_n bring_v he_o to_o such_o a_o height_n of_o passion_n as_o shall_v overpower_v his_o reason_n understanding_n faith_n and_o all_o spiritual_a grace_n that_o be_v in_o he_o and_o thus_o he_o bring_v he_o to_o deny_v to_o forswear_v and_o to_o abjure_v his_o dear_a saviour_n even_o with_o execration_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v now_o about_o the_o great_a work_n of_o man_n salvation_n when_o jesus_n be_v transfigure_v upon_o mount_n tabor_n 6._o tabor_n mar._n 9_o 6._o peter_n speak_v he_o wist_v not_o what_o for_o sudden_a fear_n carry_v he_o beside_o himself_o also_o when_o jesus_n show_v his_o disciple_n what_o he_o shall_v suffer_v at_o jerusalem_n 23._o jerusalem_n mat._n 16._o 21_o 22_o 23._o peter_n begin_v to_o rebuke_v he_o for_o it_o for_o he_o be_v carry_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o modesty_n and_o sobriety_n with_o a_o preposterous_a zeal_n and_o a_o secret_a pride_n which_o the_o devil_n do_v stir_v up_o in_o he_o thus_o be_v the_o violence_n of_o peter_n passion_n the_o immediate_a cause_n of_o his_o downfall_n because_o they_o do_v exceed_v moderation_n and_o be_v not_o regulate_v according_o the_o holy_a will_n of_o god_n thus_o also_o do_v the_o devil_n go_v to_o work_v with_o we_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o perditiou_n first_o he_o will_v set_v upon_o we_o with_o his_o subtle_a wile_n and_o delusion_n then_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o undermine_v our_o faith_n and_o trust_v in_o god_n by_o his_o evil_a suggestion_n and_o wicked_a stratagem_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o wait_v upon_o god_n for_o his_o help_n and_o succour_v in_o our_o distress_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o depend_v upon_o his_o providence_n for_o relief_n and_o comfort_n in_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o rest_v upon_o he_o and_o upon_o his_o mercy_n in_o christ_n for_o our_o salvation_n if_o all_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o confusion_n than_o he_o will_v assault_v we_o with_o fear_n and_o doubt_n to_o disquiet_v the_o peace_n of_o our_o conscience_n he_o will_v frighten_v we_o with_o trouble_n and_o danger_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n he_o will_v make_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o direct_v we_o in_o all_o our_o affair_n that_o we_o may_v trust_v to_o our_o own_o wisdom_n with_o our_o god_n he_o will_v make_v we_o doubt_v of_o his_o power_n to_o deliver_v we_o when_o we_o be_v in_o any_o strait_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n to_o make_v we_o trust_v to_o secondary_a mean_n without_o god_n or_o else_o to_o use_v unlawful_a mean_n for_o our_o safety_n and_o he_o will_v make_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o mercy_n and_o love_n of_o god_n when_o we_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o his_o rod_n or_o the_o anguish_n of_o our_o spirit_n for_o our_o sin_n to_o make_v we_o think_v that_o god_n have_v forsake_v we_o that_o he_o have_v cast_v we_o out_o of_o his_o favour_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o comfort_n for_o we_o that_o so_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o into_o despair_n how_o be_v holy_a job_n terrify_v with_o these_o doubt_n and_o fear_n in_o his_o affliction_n 25._o job_n 7._o 13_o 25._o when_o his_o bed_n do_v not_o comfort_v he_o his_o couch_n do_v not_o ease_v his_o complaint_n and_o when_o his_o soul_n choose_v strangle_v and_o death_n rather_o than_o his_o life_n thus_o it_o be_v also_o 77._o also_o psal_n 77._o with_o asaph_n and_o other_o if_o all_o other_o mean_v fail_v than_o the_o devil_n will_v work_v upon_o our_o passion_n and_o personal_a infirmity_n and_o he_o will_v kindle_v such_o a_o fire_n there_o as_o will_v devour_v our_o reason_n and_o understanding_n as_o will_v mislead_v our_o zeal_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o will_v carry_v we_o beside_o ourselves_o and_o beyond_o the_o limit_n of_o piety_n and_o goodness_n if_o he_o meet_v with_o such_o man_n as_o will_v give_v way_n to_o their_o passion_n he_o will_v easy_o inflame_v they_o with_o fury_n and_o rage_n beyond_o all_o moderation_n or_o else_o he●_n will_v drive_v they_o down_o into_o discontent_n and_o despair_n which_o be_v very_o hardly_o recover_v but_o by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v discover_v and_o escape_v his_o wile_n and_o delusion_n by_o the_o power_n of_o grace_n we_o shall_v withstand_v his_o wicked_a suggestion_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n we_o shall_v stand_v upright_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o trouble_n and_o danger_n 20._o danger_n rom._n 1._o 1._o 20._o and_o the_o strength_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n will_v carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o affliction_n cross_n and_o sorrow_n and_o it_o will_v confirm_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v find_v this_o of_o david_n to_o be_v true_a 5._o true_a psal_n 22._o 4_o 5._o they_o that_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v deliver_v out_o of_o all_o their_o trouble_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v confound_v 5._o confound_v 2_o kin._n 1●_n 5._o hezekiah_n be_v deliver_v from_o senacherib_n great_a army_n because_o he_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n if_o peter_n have_v trust_v in_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n christ_n jesus_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o have_v never_o fall_v so_o dangerous_o as_o he_o do_v faith_n will_v also_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n which_o will_v enable_v we_o to_o overpower_v and_o
though_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o christ_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o defile_v therewith_o and_o though_o he_o suffer_v for_o sin_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o for_o his_o own_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n which_o he_o take_v upon_o himself_o for_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o purity_n and_o of_o his_o righteousness_n do_v still_o remain_v unspotted_a and_o undefiled_a that_o we_o may_v be_v clothe_v therewith_o by_o faith_n to_o hide_v our_o nakedness_n and_o the_o shame_n of_o our_o sin_n when_o we_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n to_o perform_v any_o holy_a service_n unto_o he_o but_o special_o when_o we_o shall_v appear_v before_o his_o dreadful_a tribunal_n at_o the_o last_o day_n from_o hence_o also_o we_o may_v draw_v much_o consolation_n when_o we_o be_v false_o accuse_v spiteful_o use_v or_o cruel_o persecute_v for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o a_o good_a conscience_n for_o our_o dear_a saviour_n have_v suffer_v the_o like_a in_o our_o nature_n and_o for_o our_o sake_n that_o these_o and_o the_o like_a suffering_n may_v be_v sanctify_v to_o we_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v follow_v christ_n example_n of_o patience_n and_o meekness_n when_o we_o be_v under_o they_o we_o need_v not_o therefore_o be_v dismay_v when_o we_o be_v thus_o unjust_o deal_v with_o for_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a of_o these_o suffering_n and_o have_v teach_v we_o how_o to_o demean_v ourselves_o under_o they_o and_o if_o we_o wait_v patient_o upon_o god_n he_o will_v in_o due_a time_n make_v our_o innocency_n break_v forth_o like_o the_o sun_n out_o of_o a_o cloud_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o to_o our_o great_a comfort_n consider_v now_o and_o admire_v to_o see_v how_o the_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n of_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n do_v increase_v against_o christ_n for_o when_o they_o perceive_v that_o pilate_n have_v clear_v his_o innocency_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o release_v he_o their_o rage_n and_o fury_n be_v the_o more_o inflame_v 20._o inflame_v mat._n 27._o 20._o insomuch_o as_o they_o move_v the_o people_n to_o desire_v that_o barrabas_n may_v be_v release_v to_o they_o who_o raise_v sedition_n in_o the_o city_n and_o be_v also_o a_o murderer_n and_o that_o jesus_n may_v be_v crucify_v which_o kind_n of_o death_n be_v most_o ignominious_a most_o shameful_a and_o accurse_a though_o they_o know_v by_o their_o own_o law_n what_o a_o cry_a sin_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n the_o shed_n of_o innocent_a blood_n be_v yet_o no_o blood_n can_v satisfy_v they_o but_o innocent_a blood_n pilate_n offer_v they_o the_o blood_n of_o barrabas_n but_o that_o will_v not_o content_v they_o for_o they_o thirst_v after_o the_o pure_a blood_n that_o ever_o be_v spill_v even_o the_o most_o precious_a blood_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o lay_v open_v their_o corrupt_a doctrine_n and_o discover_v their_o hypocrisy_n to_o all_o the_o people_n the_o cruel_a jew_n do_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o be_v send_v to_o they_o and_o now_o they_o do_v eager_o hunt_v after_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o they_o can_v no_o way_n convince_v of_o any_o sin_n thus_o do_v their_o devilish_a envy_n and_o malice_n carry_v on_o to_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o rebellion_n against_o god_n and_o against_o his_o anoint_v now_o let_v we_o meditate_v with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n and_o pious_a devotion_n upon_o the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n 19_o redemption_n 1_o pet._n 1._o 18_o 19_o for_o we_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n as_o silver_n and_o gold_n from_o our_o vain_a conversation_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o a_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n and_o without_o spot_n who_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n so_o that_o the_o jew_n crucify_v he_o that_o be_v 8._o be_v 1_o cor._n 2._o 8._o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o blood_n which_o they_o spill_v be_v the_o blood_n of_o that_o person_n who_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 28_o paul_n act._n 20._o 28_o that_o god_n have_v purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o church_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n wherefore_o 20_o wherefore_o 1_o cor._n 6._o 20_o see_v we_o be_v buy_v with_o such_o a_o price_n we_o ought_v to_o glorify_v god_n in_o our_o body_n and_o in_o our_o spirit_n which_o be_v god_n 6._o god_n heb._n 6._o 5_o 6._o and_o not_o to_o fall_v away_o when_o we_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v see_v thereby_o we_o crucify_v to_o ourselves_o the_o son_n of_o god_n afresh_o and_o put_v he_o to_o a_o open_a shame_n by_o our_o new_a commit_v sin_n after_o repentance_n also_o we_o must_v ruminate_v upon_o the_o transcendent_a worth_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o crucify_a redeemer_n with_o pure_a affection_n for_o it_o be_v a_o infinite_a price_n to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o a_o infinite_a god_n we_o can_v conceive_v much_o less_o express_v the_o incomprehensible_a goodness_n of_o christ_n who_o of_o his_o mere_a love_n have_v give_v up_o himself_o and_o his_o whole_a nature_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a to_o purchase_v our_o redemption_n with_o his_o own_o blood_n his_o deity_n of_o itself_o can_v not_o suffer_v either_o hunger_n or_o thirst_n pain_n or_o torment_v for_o these_o and_o all_o other_o his_o suffering_n do_v proper_o belong_v to_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o by_o the_o personal_a union_n of_o his_o humanity_n with_o his_o deity_n the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n do_v suffer_v together_o with_o his_o humanity_n by_o a_o near_a sympathy_n than_o be_v between_o the_o member_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n and_o the_o head_n or_o between_o the_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o himself_o who_o be_v their_o head_n for_o these_o member_n both_o natural_a and_o spiritual_a be_v but_o knit_v and_o unite_v to_o the_o head_n by_o firm_a ligament_n but_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v up_o into_o his_o deity_n and_o so_o make_v one_o christ_n saul_n persecute_v christ_n when_o he_o do_v persecute_v his_o church_n for_o thus_o say_v christ_n unto_o he_o 5_o he_o act._n 9_o 4_o 5_o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o and_o he_o say_v who_o be_v thou_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o jesus_n who_o thou_o persecute_v for_o he_o persecute_v he_o in_o his_o member_n he_o be_v their_o head_n how_o much_o more_o than_o do_v the_o deity_n of_o christ_n suffer_v throughout_o his_o whole_a passion_n by_o simpathize_v with_o his_o humane_a nature_n not_o only_o as_o 3_o as_o cor._n 11._o 3_o god_n be_v the_o head_n of_o christ_n but_o chief_o because_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v personal_o unite_v to_o his_o deity_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n his_o suffering_n and_o his_o death_n be_v of_o so_o great_a merit_n and_o of_o such_o a_o infinite_a price_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o christ_n do_v give_v himself_o in_o his_o whole_a nature_n for_o we_o that_o his_o blood_n shall_v be_v spill_v his_o body_n mangle_a and_o torture_v his_o soul_n torment_v his_o glory_n cloud_v with_o ignominy_n and_o shame_n and_o that_o his_o deity_n shall_v be_v blaspheme_v and_o spiteful_o dishonour_v for_o our_o redemption_n and_o if_o we_o be_v buy_v with_o so_o great_a a_o price_n we_o have_v then_o as_o great_a cause_n as_o ever_o david_n have_v 4._o have_v psal_n 103_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o to_o bless_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o stir_v up_o all_o that_o be_v within_o we_o to_o praise_v his_o holy_a name_n for_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o he_o forgive_v all_o our_o iniquity_n he_o heal_v all_o our_o disease_n he_o redeem_v our_o life_n from_o destruction_n and_o he_o crow_v we_o with_o love_a kindness_n and_o tender_a mercy_n for_o if_o we_o can_v apply_v to_o ourselves_o by_o a_o true_a faith_n jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v for_o we_o 20_o we_o gal._n 2._o 20_o as_o paul_n do_v he_o will_v fasten_v the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o his_o own_o cross_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o cleave_v to_o our_o soul_n and_o he_o will_v remit_v the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o we_o for_o they_o also_o he_o will_v heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o spiritual_a disease_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o pour_v clean_a water_n upon_o we_o and_o by_o sanctify_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n and_o holy_a spirit_n unto_o newness_n of_o life_n which_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o then_o he_o will_v embrace_v we_o with_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o love_n and_o will_v crown_v we_o with_o everlasting_a peace_n consider_v yet_o
pain_n or_o trouble_v but_o will_v thou_o give_v so_o much_o way_n to_o thy_o passion_n as_o to_o dishonour_n god_n thereby_o be_v thy_o mind_n so_o much_o set_v upon_o vain_a pleasure_n as_o if_o no_o sorrow_n can_v come_v upon_o thou_o do_v christ_n bear_v his_o cross_n and_o do_v thou_o think_v to_o go_v free_a do_v thou_o not_o know_v o_o faint_a soul_n how_o to_o measure_v thy_o strength_n ●f_o thou_o do_v measure_v it_o by_o the_o common_a measure_n of_o mature_a thou_o will_v find_v it_o too_o weak_a to_o bear_v thou_o up_o against_o those_o cross_n affliction_n or_o temptation_n which_o thou_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o life_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v measure_v it_o by_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o thou_o will_v then_o perceive_v what_o strength_n thou_o have_v to_o bear_v the_o cross_n for_o thy_o strength_n lie_v not_o in_o the_o wealth_n or_o in_o the_o arm_n of_o flesh_n but_o in_o thy_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n if_o thou_o have_v but_o a_o little_a faith_n and_o a_o small_a measure_n of_o grace_n thou_o have_v then_o but_o little_a strength_n and_o courage_n to_o encounter_v with_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n with_o the_o trouble_n and_o vexation_n of_o this_o world_n and_o with_o the_o discomfort_n of_o sickness_n but_o be_v easy_o surprise_v with_o every_o temptation_n and_o sinful_a lust_n and_o as_o easy_o overwhelm_v when_o the_o wave_n of_o affliction_n come_v upon_o thou_o wherefore_o when_o thou_o be_v upon_o thy_o bed_n of_o sickness_n or_o in_o any_o distress_n and_o misery_n complain_v not_o of_o thy_o strength_n of_o body_n if_o that_o be_v weak_a and_o fail_v but_o look_v to_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o 18._o thou_o 2_o pet._n 3._o 18._o for_o grace_n may_v grow_v and_o increase_v though_o the_o strength_n of_o thy_o body_n do_v decay_v or_o be_v spend_v and_o grace_n will_v uphold_v thou_o from_o sink_v even_o in_o the_o bitter_a pang_n of_o death_n and_o it_o will_v make_v thou_o to_o hold_v on_o constant_a to_o the_o end_n in_o all_o thy_o suffering_n consider_v in_o the_o next_o place_n that_o christ_n have_v appoint_v his_o cross_n to_o be_v the_o badge_n of_o every_o true_a christian_a which_o he_o must_v wear_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n thus_o say_v christ_n 24._o christ_n mat._n 16_o 24._o if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o also_o paul_n say_v 22._o say_v act_n 14._o 22._o that_o through_o much_o tribulation_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n christ_n give_v this_o badge_n to_o some_o for_o the_o trial_n and_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o they_o that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o to_o other_o for_o their_o humiliation_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o repentance_n for_o their_o sin_n he_o do_v exercise_n other_o under_o the_o cross_n to_o conform_v they_o unto_o himself_o in_o his_o suffering_n and_o to_o make_v they_o bear_v it_o content_o also_o he_o give_v this_o badge_n to_o some_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o security_n and_o to_o prevent_v their_o backslide_n from_o god_n for_o by_o these_o trial_n and_o affliction_n he_o do_v always_o intend_v the_o good_a of_o his_o servant_n and_o not_o their_o hurt_n where_o this_o mark_n be_v true_o imprint_v there_o will_v grace_n appear_v and_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o will_v break_v forth_o in_o their_o conformity_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o their_o faith_n and_o patience_n under_o affliction_n and_o in_o their_o rejoice_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o apostle_n joy_n 41_o joy_n act_n 5._o 41_o that_o they_o be_v count_v worthy_a to_o suffer_v shame_n and_o rebuke_v for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v paul_n glory_n 1_o glory_n gal._n 6._o 1_o for_o say_v he_o god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v glory_n save_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o the_o world_n be_v crucify_v unto_o i_o and_o i_o unto_o the_o world_n for_o such_o be_v the_o tender_a and_o indulgent_a care_n of_o christ_n towards_o those_o that_o wear_v his_o livery_n that_o though_o they_o be_v put_v into_o the_o fine_v pot_n of_o affliction_n there_o to_o have_v their_o dross_n and_o corruption_n purge_v and_o refine_a yet_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o receive_v any_o detriment_n thereby_o but_o he_o will_v bring_v they_o forth_o pure_a gold_n than_o they_o be_v before_o wherefore_o learn_v to_o carry_v the_o cross_n of_o christ_n in_o thy_o heart_n expect_v it_o daily_o and_o resolve_v to_o bear_v it_o willing_o when_o god_n shall_v be_v please_v to_o lay_v it_o upon_o thou_o and_o then_o thou_o will_v not_o feel_v it_o so_o heavy_a as_o it_o be_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n also_o imprint_v the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o passion_n in_o thy_o mind_n thereby_o to_o mortify_v all_o thy_o worldly_a lust_n and_o sinful_a desire_n this_o cognizance_n will_v tell_v thou_o what_o inheritance_n thou_o have_v in_o christ_n if_o thou_o do_v due_o examine_v thy_o heart_n when_o thou_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n how_o thou_o have_v glorify_v god_n by_o thy_o faith_n and_o patience_n how_o much_o thou_o be_v refine_v from_o thy_o corruption_n how_o much_o near_o thou_o be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n in_o thy_o affection_n to_o love_v he_o to_o confide_v in_o he_o to_o delight_v in_o the_o sweet_a fruition_n of_o he_o and_o to_o meditate_v on_o his_o goodness_n and_o love_n to_o thou_o if_o thou_o can_v find_v such_o fruit_n of_o thy_o cross_n and_o that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o thy_o sorrow_n thou_o can_v say_v with_o holy_a job_n 1●_n job_n job_n 13._o 1●_n though_o he_o slay_v i_o yet_o will_v i_o trust_v in_o he_o then_o be_v confident_a that_o christ_n have_v set_v his_o own_o stamp_n upon_o thy_o heart_n he_o will_v know_v thou_o for_o his_o own_o he_o will_v hide_v thou_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o his_o wing_n he_o will_v provide_v for_o thou_o in_o all_o thy_o necessity_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o all_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o raise_v his_o stamp_n or_o the_o impression_n of_o it_o out_o of_o thy_o heart_n or_o to_o separate_v thou_o from_o christ_n mark_v further_o and_o consider_v it_o well_o that_o there_o be_v some_o that_o follow_v christ_n all_o that_o dolorous_a way_n to_o mount_n calvary_n who_o can_v not_o refrain_v from_o tear_n and_o 28._o u._fw-mi luk._n 23._o 27_o 28._o sorrowful_a sob_n but_o bewail_v he_o and_o lament_v when_o they_o see_v his_o doleful_a and_o sad_a condition_n and_o they_o be_v chief_o woman_n to_o who_o jesus_n turn_v say_v daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n weep_v not_o for_o i_o but_o weep_v for_o yourselves_o and_o for_o your_o child_n whereby_o he_o do_v gracious_o instruct_v they_o how_o to_o fix_v their_o mourning_n upon_o the_o right_a object_n that_o their_o tear_n may_v proceed_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o grace_n not_o to_o mourn_v for_o he_o because_o he_o do_v suffer_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v appoint_v by_o his_o heavenly_a father_n and_o he_o do_v bear_v it_o in_o obedience_n to_o his_o will_n also_o he_o do_v undertake_v no_o more_o than_o he_o be_v well_o able_a to_o undergo_v and_o no_o more_o can_v be_v lay_v upon_o he_o than_o be_v decree_v in_o his_o father_n counsel_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n but_o christ_n will_v have_v they_o weep_v and_o mourn_v for_o their_o sin_n which_o bring_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o themselves_o and_o upon_o their_o child_n for_o there_o be_v grievous_a judgement_n which_o will_v short_o come_v upon_o they_o also_o christ_n do_v intimate_v to_o they_o that_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o child_n be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o suffer_v such_o contumely_n and_o so_o much_o cruelty_n both_o by_o the_o jew_n and_o by_o the_o gentile_n that_o they_o may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o from_o the_o punishment_n of_o they_o consider_v now_o that_o christ_n do_v give_v they_o two_o special_a reason_n why_o they_o shall_v weep_v and_o mourn_v for_o themselves_o and_o for_o their_o child_n first_o because_o of_o the_o great_a desolation_n and_o final_a destruction_n that_o be_v short_o after_o to_o come_v upon_o that_o famous_a and_o renown_a city_n and_o upon_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n wherein_o they_o and_o their_o child_n shall_v suffer_v very_o great_a calamity_n therefore_o christ_n do_v tell_v they_o 29_o they_o lu._n 23._o 29_o that_o the_o day_n be_v come_v in_o which_o they_o shall_v say_v bless_a be_v the_o barren_a
and_o the_o womb_n that_o never_o bear_v and_o the_o pap_n which_o never_o give_v suck_v 4●_n suck_v luk._n 19_o 4●_n and_o christ_n himself_o weep_v for_o the_o misery_n that_o be_v to_o come_v upon_o jerusalem_n second_o christ_n will_v they_o to_o reserve_v their_o tear_n to_o lament_v and_o bewail_v their_o sin_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o child_n because_o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n be_v come_v when_o every_o one_o both_o high_a and_o low_a great_a and_o small_a young_a and_o old_a must_v give_v a_o particular_a account_n to_o god_n of_o what_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o flesh_n either_o in_o thought_n word_n or_o deed_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n 30_o evil_n isa_n 2._o 19_o hos_fw-la 10._o luk._n 23._o 30_o then_o shall_v they_o begin_v to_o say_v to_o the_o mountain_n fall_v on_o we_o and_o to_o the_o hill_n cover_v we_o thus_o do_v christ_n direct_v we_o how_o to_o glorify_v god_n with_o our_o tear_n how_o to_o comfort_v our_o soul_n by_o our_o mourning_n and_o how_o to_o be_v prepare_v for_o any_o common_a calamity_n and_o also_o how_o to_o meet_v the_o day_n of_o judgego_v with_o comfort_n and_o that_o be_v by_o mourning_n for_o our_o sin_n in_o time_n and_o by_o make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n with_o the_o tear_n of_o true_a repentance_n now_o take_v a_o view_n of_o thy_o tear_n and_o see_v from_o whence_o they_o flow_v from_o a_o humane_a principle_n or_o from_o a_o principle_n of_o grace_n if_o thou_o can_v mourn_v for_o the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n which_o thou_o suffer_v and_o can_v not_o mourn_v for_o the_o evil_a of_o the_o sin_n which_o thou_o commit_v thy_o tear_n be_v not_o then_o spend_v upon_o the_o right_a object_n or_o if_o thou_o do_v weep_v &_o grieve_v for_o thy_o sin_n and_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o christ_n by_o faith_n in_o thy_o mourning_n thou_o will_v have_v but_o little_a assurance_n of_o pardon_n and_o thou_o will_v find_v but_o small_a comfort_n in_o thy_o weep_n also_o if_o thou_o do_v lament_v and_o sorrow_n for_o thy_o sin_n and_o not_o full_o purpose_n and_o do_v endeavour_v to_o reform_v thy_o sinful_a life_n thy_o repentance_n be_v not_o sound_a and_o thy_o sorrow_n be_v not_o unto_o salvation_n so_o likewise_o if_o nature_n can_v find_v tear_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o some_o dear_a friend_n or_o for_o any_o other_o worldly_a loss_n and_o grace_n can_v find_v none_o to_o bewail_v thyself_o because_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n be_v cloud_v from_o thou_o or_o because_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v under_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n thou_o do_v then_o waste_v thy_o tear_n to_o a_o wrong_a end_n 6._o end_n ezra_n 10._o 6._o ezra_n mourn_v for_o the_o transgression_n of_o the_o people_n 4._o people_n neh._n 1._o 4._o and_o nehemiah_n mourn_v for_o the_o desolation_n of_o jerusalem_n 230._o jerusalem_n psal_n 119._o 230._o river_n of_o water_n run_v down_o my_o eye_n say_v david_n because_o they_o keep_v not_o thy_o law_n these_o tear_n proceed_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o grace_n wherewith_o god_n be_v well_o please_v and_o christ_n do_v here_o command_v we_o to_o reserve_v our_o tear_n for_o general_a calamity_n because_o than_o god_n do_v call_v for_o fast_v lamentation_n and_o mourning_n from_o those_o especial_o that_o be_v like_a to_o partake_v in_o such_o calamity_n if_o we_o can_v thus_o regulate_v our_o mourning_n and_o thus_o employ_v our_o tear_n it_o will_v make_v much_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o own_o soul_n but_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o dreadful_a day_n of_o judgement_n shall_v most_o of_o all_o affect_v our_o heart_n and_o soul_n with_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o with_o a_o holy_a and_o earnest_a desire_n to_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v a_o true_a assurance_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o they_o by_o our_o repentance_n that_o we_o may_v then_o appear_v before_o god_n without_o any_o guilt_n of_o sin_n upon_o our_o soul_n and_o without_o the_o clamour_n and_o accusation_n of_o a_o evil_a conscience_n and_o then_o it_o will_v be_v a_o day_n of_o rejoice_v to_o we_o and_o not_o a_o day_n of_o terror_n but_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v to_o appear_v with_o the_o pollution_n and_o stain_n of_o sin_n and_o if_o our_o conscience_n be_v ready_a to_o accuse_v we_o and_o to_o prefer_v a_o bill_n of_o indictment_n against_o we_o that_o day_n will_v be_v most_o terrible_a and_o fearful_a to_o we_o for_o when_o we_o shall_v look_v upon_o the_o judge_n we_o shall_v see_v nothing_o in_o his_o countenance_n but_o terror_n and_o fury_n and_o we_o can_v expect_v nothing_o from_o he_o but_o that_o dreadful_a sentence_n of_o go_v you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a torment_n on_o the_o contrary_a if_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n and_o 13._o c_o tit._n 2._o 12._o 13._o worldly_a lust_n and_o to_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a in_o this_o present_a world_n we_o may_v then_o confident_o look_v for_o that_o bless_a hope_n and_o the_o glorious_a appear_v of_o the_o great_a god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n wherefore_o it_o concern_v we_o no_o less_o than_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v up_o our_o account_n while_o we_o live_v here_o which_o we_o must_v then_o give_v unto_o god_n even_o to_o a_o idle_a word_n because_o we_o shall_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o our_o work_n for_o after_o this_o life_n be_v end_v there_o be_v no_o more_o faith_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o christ_n no_o more_o hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o no_o repentance_n for_o sin_n if_o our_o account_n be_v make_v up_o according_a to_o our_o own_o righteousness_n it_o will_v come_v far_o short_a of_o that_o which_o god_n require_v and_o he_o will_v not_o accept_v it_o but_o if_o we_o can_v make_v it_o up_o in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n than_o whatsoever_o be_v want_v in_o we_o will_v be_v make_v perfect_a by_o his_o righteousness_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n how_o pitiful_a then_o and_o miserable_a will_v the_o condition_n of_o unregenerate_a man_n be_v at_o that_o day_n who_o can_v make_v perfect_a their_o account_n see_v they_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o how_o can_v they_o stand_v before_o that_o great_a and_o dreadful_a judge_n see_v he_o will_v not_o then_o know_v they_o wherefore_o we_o shall_v not_o neglect_v to_o make_v up_o our_o account_n thus_o with_o god_n every_o day_n because_o we_o know_v not_o how_o soon_o we_o be_v bereave_v of_o time_n and_o grace_n for_o it_o and_o the_o loss_n of_o one_o day_n may_v endanger_v our_o salvation_n lose_v no_o time_n then_o and_o no_o opportunity_n for_o this_o great_a work_n of_o thy_o salvation_n 10._o salvation_n 2_o pet_n 1._o 10._o but_o redeem_v the_o time_n which_o thou_o have_v lose_v by_o double_v thy_o future_a diligence_n to_o make_v thy_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a what_o christ_n suffer_v upon_o the_o cross_n our_o gracious_a redeemer_n after_o many_o a_o weary_a step_n be_v now_o bring_v to_o mount_n calvary_n which_o be_v without_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n where_o he_o must_v finish_v the_o great_a work_n of_o man_n redemption_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n for_o to_o this_o end_n he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o assume_v our_o nature_n and_o all_o our_o iniquity_n be_v impute_v to_o he_o because_o he_o be_v our_o surety_n and_o do_v undertake_v to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o they_o all_o not_o only_o for_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o for_o the_o gentile_a 27._o gentile_a joh_n 20._o ●_o at_o 27._o now_o behold_v and_o see_v how_o his_o innocent_a hand_n and_o foot_n be_v nail_v to_o his_o cross_n and_o how_o he_o be_v mock_v and_o deride_v in_o his_o misery_n how_o the_o barbarous_a people_n insult_v over_o he_o how_o grievous_o he_o be_v torture_v and_o what_o execrable_a blasphemy_n they_o belch_v out_o against_o he_o he_o do_v now_o endure_v the_o bitterness_n of_o pain_n and_o the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a be_v naked_a upon_o the_o cross_n but_o above_o all_o the_o anguish_n of_o his_o soul_n be_v so_o great_a because_o the_o fierce_a wrath_n and_o hot_a displeasure_n of_o almighty_n god_n be_v heavy_a upon_o he_o that_o he_o cry_v out_o my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o for_o than_o he_o have_v little_a or_o no_o sense_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n love_n and_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o deity_n be_v cloud_v for_o a_o time_n from_o his_o humanity_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n our_o bless_a redeemer_n suffer_v all_o kind_n of_o shame_n and_o ignominy_n
life_n which_o do_v embitter_v all_o our_o comfort_n here_o but_o when_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v this_o heavenly_a paradise_n 13._o paradise_n rev._n 14._o 13._o the_o spirit_n say_v that_o we_o shall_v rest_v from_o our_o labour_n and_o we_o shall_v feel_v no_o more_o sorrow_n our_o body_n shall_v sleep_v in_o the_o dust_n until_o the_o general_a resurrection_n but_o our_o soul_n shall_v rest_v in_o joy_n and_o happiness_n for_o evermore_o though_o we_o live_v a_o restless_a and_o uncomfortable_a life_n in_o this_o world_n it_o will_v be_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v we_o shall_v have_v fullness_n of_o joy_n and_o felicity_n with_o christ_n and_o with_o his_o holy_a angel_n and_o bless_a saint●_n in_o heaven_n which_o never_o shall_v have_v a_o end_n consider_v also_o that_o christ_n do_v present_o grant_v his_o request_n and_o do_v sudden_o perform_v his_o promise_n for_o god_n do_v sometime_o answer_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o heart_n before_o we_o speak_v and_o he_o will_v give_v what_o we_o need_v before_o we_o ask_v when_o daniel_n pray_v for_o the_o restauration_n of_o jerusalem_n god_n answer_v he_o before_o he_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o his_o prayer_n 21_o prayer_n dan._n 9_o 21_o and_o cause_v his_o angel_n gabriel_n to_o fly_v swift_o to_o touch_v he_o and_o to_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o time_n when_o jerusasalem_n shall_v be_v restore_v but_o sometime_o it_o be_v long_o before_o we_o have_v a_o return_n of_o our_o prayer_n because_o god_n will_v try_v our_o patience_n and_o constancy_n in_o wait_v his_o good_a pleasure_n and_o by_o his_o delay_n to_o make_v we_o more_o fervent_a in_o our_o supplication_n for_o he_o love_v a_o holy_a importunity_n 12._o importunity_n 1_o sam._n 1._o 12._o hannah_n continue_v long_o before_o the_o lord_n in_o pray_v for_o a_o child_n before_o she_o obtain_v her_o request_n also_o god_n do_v sometime_o long_o delay_v the_o performance_n of_o his_o promise_n to_o try_v our_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o as_o he_o do_v to_o abraham_n for_o diverse_a year_n before_o he_o give_v he_o a_o child_n by_o sarah_n his_o wife_n and_o also_o before_o he_o deliver_v his_o people_n out_o of_o egypt_n wherefore_o faint_v not_o in_o thy_o prayer_n for_o what_o thou_o desire_v neither_o be_v weak_a in_o faith_n if_o thou_o have_v a_o promise_n from_o god_n but_o rest_n upon_o it_o with_o a_o assure_a hope_n for_o he_o will_v choose_v the_o fit_a time_n to_o answer_v th●_n prayer_n and_o to_o perform_v his_o promise_n which_o may_v most_o advance_v his_o own_o glory_n and_o be_v best_a for_o thy_o good_a of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n now_o do_v the_o sorrow_n of_o this_o bless_a virgin_n begin_v when_o she_o see_v she_o dear_o belove_a son_n in_o this_o lamentable_a condition_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o hear_v the_o blasphemy_n and_o reproach_n both_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n she_o see_v how_o the_o barbarous_a people_n do_v insult_v over_o he_o and_o what_o cruel_a torman_n be_v inflict_v upon_o every_o part_n of_o his_o body_n and_o that_o he_o be_v now_o ready_a in_o this_o extremity_n of_o misery_n to_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n 35._o ghost_n luk._n 2._o 34._o 35._o now_o be_v old_a simeon_n prophesy_v fulfil_v now_o do_v a_o sword_n pierce_v through_o her_o soul_n 14._o soul_n isa_n 8._o 14._o he_o be_v now_o set_v for_o the_o fall_n and_o rise_v again_o of_o many_o in_o israel_n and_o for_o a_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v speak_v against_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o strengthen_v her_o faith_n she_o have_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o too_o much_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n for_o her_o tender_a heart_n can_v not_o indu●e_v to_o see_v the_o barbarous_a inhumanity_n and_o savage_a cruelty_n that_o her_o dear_a son_n suffer_v who_o she_o know_v to_o be_v innocent_a and_o just_a and_o free_a from_o any_o offence_n for_o no_o doubt_n christ_n have_v former_o reveal_v to_o she_o 34._o she_o mar._n 10._o 33_o 34._o as_o he_o do_v to_o his_o disciple_n both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n what_o he_o shall_v suffer_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o it_o be_v so_o decree_v by_o god_n his_o father_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n that_o their_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o he_o may_v be_v strengthen_v also_o that_o god_n send_v he_o into_o the_o world_n for_o this_o very_a end_n and_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v work_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o his_o elect_n by_o his_o death_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a virgin_n may_v be_v the_o better_o arm_v to_o bear_v her_o great_a affliction_n at_o this_o time_n she_o know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n though_o he_o be_v clothe_v with_o her_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v whatsoewer_n shall_v be_v inflict_v upon_o he_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o secret_a counsel_n of_o god_n she_o be_v also_o full_o persuade_v that_o though_o they_o do_v kill_v he_o yet_o he_o will_v rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o his_o own_o word_n in_o conquest_n and_o triumph_n over_o all_o his_o enemy_n maugre_o all_o their_o power_n and_o policy_n to_o prevent_v i●_n the_o bless_a virgin_n do_v ponder_v these_o thing_n in_o her_o mind_n she_o lay_v they_o up_o in_o her_o heart_n and_o do_v faithful_o believe_v they_o which_o do_v much_o sweeten_v her_o sorrow_n and_o mitigate_v the_o anguish_n of_o her_o soul_n and_o hereby_o she_o do_v bear_v her_o affliction_n with_o the_o more_o content_a patience_n thus_o will_v christ_n arm_v his_o servant_n with_o christian_a fortitude_n and_o will_v furnish_v they_o with_o spiritual_a ability_n when_o they_o be_v to_o encounter_v with_o any_o hard_a trial_n and_o he_o will_v give_v they_o heavenly_a comfort_n for_o their_o encouragement_n when_o they_o suffer_v any_o sorrow_n or_o affliction_n for_o his_o sake_n for_o they_o be_v all_o as_o dear_a unto_o he_o as_o his_o mother_n be_v wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v in_o any_o distress_n or_o put_v upon_o any_o service_n which_o be_v above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n we_o must_v look_v upon_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n and_o upon_o his_o goodness_n and_o tender_a love_n to_o all_o his_o servant_n and_o also_o upon_o god_n eternal_a decree_n and_o wise_a providence_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v impose_v upon_o we_o but_o what_o be_v preordain_v &_o foresee_v by_o god_n himself_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o then_o christ_n our_o bless_a redeemer_n will_v fit_v we_o for_o it_o and_o if_o it_o be_v too_o hard_a for_o we_o to_o undergo_v he_o will_v direct_v and_o assist_v we_o with_o his_o spirit_n in_o it_o also_o if_o the_o burden_n be_v too_o heavy_a for_o our_o strength_n to_o bear_v he_o will_v either_o lessen_v the_o burden_n or_o increase_v our_o strength_n or_o else_o he_o will_v act_v the_o part_n of_o the_o cyrenian_a and_o take_v it_o off_o from_o we_o in_o his_o good_a time_n the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n can_v claim_v no_o privilege_n from_o cross_n sorrow_n and_o affliction_n in_o this_o life_n for_o they_o must_v pass_v through_o many_o tribulation_n before_o they_o come_v to_o their_o eternal_a rest_n in_o heaven_n god_n have_v many_o gracious_a end_n in_o suffer_v his_o servant_n to_o be_v tempt_v to_o be_v try_v to_o be_v buffet_v and_o afflict_v and_o whatsoever_o the_o instrument_n which_o he_o use_v do_v intend_v against_o they_o yet_o he_o will_v frustrate_v their_o wicked_a design_n and_o will_v effect_v his_o own_o work_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o for_o their_o good_a 9_o good_a ●_o cor._n 12_o ●_o ●_o 9_o paul_n have_v his_o temptation_n and_o his_o buffet_n by_o the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n to_o keep_v he_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n through_o the_o abundance_n of_o revelation_n and_o to_o manifest_v the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o his_o weakness_n and_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o christ_n in_o sustain_v he_o in_o his_o suffering_n how_o strange_o be_v abraham_n faith_n and_o job_n patience_n try_v how_o be_v god_n glorify_v thereby_o and_o how_o be_v they_o reward_v for_o their_o obedience_n and_o constancy_n what_o affliction_n do_v the_o israelite_n suffer_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v but_o the_o correction_n of_o a_o love_a father_n to_o a_o stiffnecked_a son_n for_o thus_o say_v moses_n to_o they_o 5_o they_o deut._n 8._o 5_o thou_o shall_v also_o consider_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o as_o a_o man_n chasten_v his_o son_n so_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n chasten_v thou_o holy_a david_n do_v often_o feel_v the_o smart_n of_o god_n rod_n and_o he_o find_v much_o good_a and_o comfort_n by_o it_o 6●_n it_o psal_n 119
6●_n before_o i_o be_v afflict_v say_v he_o i_o go_v astray_o but_o now_o have_v i_o keep_v thy_o word_n also_o he_o say_v 4_o say_v psal_n 23._o 4_o thy_o rod_n and_o thy_o staff_n they_o comfort_v i_o and_o then_o he_o conclude_v thus_o 12_o thus_o psal_n 94._o 12_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n who_o thou_o chastene_v o_o lord_n this_o exhortation_n the_o wise_a man_n give_v 12._o give_v prov._n 3._o 11_o 12._o my_o son_n despise_v not_o the_o chasten_n of_o the_o lord_n neither_o beweary_a of_o his_o correction_n for_o who_o the_o lord_n love_v he_o correct_v even_o as_o a_o father_n the_o son_n in_o who_o he_o delight_v 11._o delight_v heb._n 12._o 11._o but_o no_o chasten_n for_o the_o present_a seem_v joyous_a but_o grievous_a nevertheless_o afterward_o it_o yield_v the_o peaceable_a fruit_n of_o righteousness_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v exercise_v thereby_o wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o measure_v the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o the_o outward_a blessing_n which_o we_o enjoy_v nor_o his_o displeasure_n by_o the_o cross_n which_o we_o suffer_v consider_v now_o that_o none_o can_v ever_o claim_v great_a privilege_n from_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n than_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o none_o be_v ever_o more_o to_o be_v honour_v upon_o earth_n than_o she_o for_o she_o do_v bear_v christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n in_o her_o bless_a womb_n who_o have_v the_o command_n of_o all_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a consolation_n and_o she_o enjoy_v the_o comfort_n of_o his_o sacred_a society_n many_o year_n and_o yet_o she_o have_v her_o care_n she_o have_v her_o sorrow_n her_o whole_a life_n be_v full_a of_o affliction_n want_n and_o necessity_n she_o be_v put_v to_o great_a extremity_n when_o christ_n be_v bear_v soon_o after_o she_o flee_v into_o egypt_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o her_o son_n life_n she_o lose_v he_o three_o day_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o at_o that_o time_n she_o seek_v he_o with_o a_o sorrowful_a heart_n but_o above_o all_o behold_v and_o see_v how_o her_o soul_n be_v now_o pierce_v through_o with_o grief_n for_o she_o must_v now_o lose_v his_o gracious_a company_n for_o ever_o she_o now_o behold_v he_o upon_o the_o cross_n she_o see_v how_o his_o tender_a body_n be_v rend_v and_o tear_v with_o the_o thorn_n and_o with_o the_o whip_n how_o his_o hand_n and_o foot_n be_v nail_v to_o the_o cross_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o notorious_a malefactor_n and_o she_o hear_v the_o revile_n and_o blasphemy_n that_o be_v utter_v against_o he_o in_o a_o most_o shameful_a &_o spiteful_a manner_n which_o be_v enough_o to_o break_v her_o sorrowful_a heart_n but_o especial_o she_o do_v see_v his_o very_a heart_n blood_n gush_v out_o of_o his_o side_n which_o be_v pierce_v with_o a_o spear_n this_o be_v the_o woeful_a and_o lamentable_a condition_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n at_o this_o time_n but_o christ_n give_v her_o inward_a comfort_n and_o strength_n of_o faith_n answerable_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o her_o sorrow_n which_o do_v uphold_v her_o heart_n from_o faint_a and_o her_o soul_n from_o sink_v this_o may_v be_v the_o condition_n of_o any_o of_o god_n servant_n they_o may_v be_v oppress_v and_o press_v down_o with_o temporal_a misery_n they_o may_v drink_v deep_a in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o they_o but_o yet_o they_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v upon_o they_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o they_o to_o hurt_v their_o soul_n for_o that_o be_v take_v away_o by_o these_o suffering_n of_o christ_n which_o make_v the_o burden_n of_o they_o more_o easy_a that_o they_o may_v bear_v it_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n when_o our_o affliction_n be_v thus_o sanctify_v we_o shall_v find_v the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n that_o come_v thereby_o to_o be_v very_o sweet_a and_o profitable_a so_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v good_a cause_n to_o rejoice_v under_o they_o for_o as_o our_o sorrow_n and_o suffering_n do_v abound_v so_o also_o grace_n shall_v superabound_v 5._o superabound_v 2_o cor._n 1._o 5._o and_o as_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n abound_v in_o we_o so_o our_o consolation_n also_o abound_v by_o christ_n consider_v yet_o further_o that_o as_o the_o holy_a virgin_n be_v continual_o exercise_v under_o the_o cross_n and_o have_v she_o share_v in_o common_a calamity_n so_o likewise_o she_o have_v her_o particular_a care_n of_o want_n and_o scarcity_n for_o her_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v but_o mean_a and_o her_o livelihood_n be_v but_o small_a therefore_o she_o be_v now_o like_a to_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o all_o comfort_n relief_n and_o succour_n but_o christ_n her_o belove_a son_n take_v care_n of_o she_o he_o provide_v as_o well_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o her_o body_n as_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o her_o soul_n and_o commend_v she_o to_o john_n his_o belove_a disciple_n 27._o disciple_n john_n 19_o 26_o 27._o woman_n say_v he_o to_o his_o mother_n behold_v thy_o son_n and_o to_o john_n he_o say_v behold_v thy_o mother_n and_o from_o that_o hour_n john_n take_v she_o unto_o his_o own_o home_n and_o provide_v for_o she_o during_o her_o life_n thus_o be_v the_o bless_a virgin_n train_v up_o in_o the_o school_n of_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n to_o keep_v she_o from_o spiritual_a pride_n though_o she_o be_v honour_v and_o bless_v above_o all_o other_o woman_n and_o that_o her_o mind_n shall_v not_o be_v draw_v away_o after_o the_o pomp_n and_o vanitis_n of_o the_o world_n but_o still_o to_o bear_v christ_n in_o her_o heart_n as_o sometime_o she_o do_v bear_v he_o in_o her_o womb_n it_o be_v also_o to_o free_v she_o from_o all_o earthly_a care_n that_o the_o meditation_n of_o her_o heart_n may_v be_v always_o heavenly_a and_o that_o the_o desire_n of_o her_o soul_n may_v be_v to_o be_v with_o christ_n this_o care_n christ_n will_v have_v to_o provide_v whatsoever_o be_v needful_a for_o all_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o for_o he_o best_o know_v what_o be_v good_a for_o we_o and_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o want_v if_o we_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o he_o we_o need_v not_o cark_n and_o care_n for_o the_o transitory_a thing_n of_o this_o life_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o wicked_a as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o godly_a we_o need_v not_o distrust_v the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n but_o we_o may_v confident_o rest_v upon_o christ_n for_o he_o will_v support_v and_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o tribulation_n and_o will_v provide_v for_o we_o in_o our_o want_n and_o necessity_n trouble_n and_o sorrow_n may_v come_v upon_o we_o loss_n of_o parent_n child_n or_o friend_n will_v come_v and_o casualty_n may_v happen_v in_o our_o estate_n which_o we_o will_v neither_o foresee_v nor_o prevent_v these_o and_o the_o like_a will_v embitter_v all_o the_o comfort_n and_o content_n that_o we_o can_v find_v in_o this_o world_n but_o if_o we_o belong_v unto_o christ_n we_o shall_v never_o lose_v he_o neither_o can_v any_o thing_n bereave_v we_o of_o the_o sweet_a consolation_n that_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o he_o this_o we_o may_v believe_v to_o be_v true_a that_o our_o cross_n and_o suffering_n in_o this_o life_n may_v be_v better_o for_o we_o then_o to_o enjoy_v all_o earthly_a pleasure_n and_o delight_n moses_n refuse_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o pharaoh_n daughter_n choose_v rather_o to_o 26._o ●_o heb._n 11._o 35_o 25_o 26._o suffer_v affliction_n with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n than_o to_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n for_o a_o season_n esteem_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n great_a riches_n than_o the_o treasure_n in_o egypt_n for_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n 12_o reward_n heb._n 12._o 12_o then_o lift_v up_o the_o hand_n which_o hang_v down_o and_o the_o feeble_a knee_n let_v not_o outward_a cross_n or_o affliction_n too_o much_o seize_v upon_o thou_o but_o by_o faith_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o reward_n and_o raise_v up_o thy_o meditation_n to_o spiritual_a thing_n set_v the_o affection_n of_o thy_o heart_n upon_o christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v which_o will_v make_v thy_o life_n comfortable_a here_o and_o will_v bring_v thou_o to_o reign_v eternal_o with_o he_o hereafter_o now_o we_o must_v learn_v how_o to_o draw_v true_a consolation_n to_o our_o soul_n from_o this_o eternal_a fountain_n of_o comfort_n when_o outward_a calamity_n or_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n do_v overpresse_v we_o our_o worldly_a preferment_n our_o natural_a endowment_n humane_a learning_n or_o common_a grace_n can_v reach_v this_o fountain_n the_o well_o be_v deep_a and_o nothing_o can_v reach_v it_o but_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v the_o only_a bucket_n to_o draw_v this_o water_n of_o comfort_n from_o christ_n which_o will_v refresh_v
our_o soul_n when_o they_o be_v thirsty_a and_o dry_a heaven_n will_n then_o smile_v upon_o we_o though_o the_o world_n frown_n the_o inward_a man_n will_v feel_v comfort_n and_o consolation_n though_o the_o outward_a man_n be_v miserable_o torture_v and_o torment_v with_o the_o vexation_n and_o misery_n that_o be_v incident_a to_o this_o life_n wherefore_o every_o pain_n and_o grief_n that_o we_o feel_v and_o every_o cross_n and_o affliction_n that_o we_o suffer_v shall_v make_v we_o have_v a_o great_a desire_n to_o some_o of_o this_o water_n 15._o water_n 2_o sam._n 23._o 15._o than_o david_n have_v to_o drink_v of_o the_o water_n of_o the_o well_o of_o bethlehem_n which_o be_v by_o the_o gate_n also_o if_o we_o will_v draw_v comfort_n to_o ourselves_o from_o this_o heavenly_a fountain_n we_o must_v then_o comfort_v the_o comfortless_a 35._o comfortless_a mat._n 25._o 35._o we_o must_v feed_v the_o hungry_a visit_v the_o sick_a clothe_v the_o naked_a and_o relieve_v the_o oppress_v then_o christ_n will_v comfort_v we_o in_o our_o distress_n and_o he_o will_v provide_v for_o we_o in_o our_o necessity_n 10_o necessity_n psal_n 34._o 10_o the_o young_a lion_n may_v lack_v and_o suffer_v hunger_n but_o we_o shall_v not_o want_v any_o good_a thing_n christ_n be_v 1_o be_v zech_n 13._o 1_o this_o fountain_n which_o god_n promise_v shall_v be_v open_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o sin_n and_o for_o uncleanness_n and_o it_o be_v open_v when_o this_o bless_a virgin_n see_v the_o blood_n and_o water_n gush_v out_o of_o his_o side_n which_o be_v pierce_v with_o the_o spear_n to_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n that_o do_v wound_v our_o soul_n and_o to_o wash_v away_o the_o filth_n of_o sin_n that_o do_v pollute_v and_o defile_v our_o conscience_n no_o dart_n of_o satan_n can_v be_v so_o fiery_a against_o a_o poor_a sinner_n but_o this_o blood_n can_v quench_v they_o no_o wound_n can_v be_v so_o deadly_a or_o so_o deep_a in_o the_o soul_n but_o this_o blood_n can_v search_v it_o and_o cure_v it_o if_o it_o be_v right_o apply_v by_o faith_n whereof_o we_o may_v have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n by_o our_o repentance_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n wherefore_o here_o be_v much_o comfort_n for_o a_o poor_a languish_a soul_n that_o be_v doubtful_a of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n if_o his_o faith_n can_v persuade_v he_o that_o christ_n jesus_n be_v crucify_v for_o he_o and_o that_o this_o fountain_n be_v open_v for_o his_o cure_n for_o without_o this_o holy_a persuasion_n nothing_o can_v true_o comfort_v we_o in_o our_o spiritual_a affliction_n faith_n will_v give_v we_o this_o holy_a assurance_n if_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n thereof_o we_o can_v say_v with_o holy_a paul_n 14_o paul_n gal._n 6._o 14_o by_o the_o cross_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o world_n be_v crucify_v to_o i_o and_o i_o unto_o the_o world_n hereby_o we_o have_v power_n to_o mortify_v our_o evil_a concupiscence_n and_o all_o our_o sinful_a lust_n that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o dominion_n over_o we_o to_o lead_v we_o captive_a unto_o destruction_n last_o we_o may_v learn_v by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n that_o it_o be_v a_o pious_a duty_n which_o god_n require_v for_o child_n to_o provide_v for_o their_o needy_a or_o age_a parent_n according_a to_o their_o ability_n both_o in_o their_o life_n and_o at_o their_o death_n and_o this_o be_v part_n of_o that_o thankfulness_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o their_o parent_n and_o which_o god_n have_v command_v they_o to_o perform_v for_o next_o under_o god_n we_o owe_v ourselves_o and_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v unto_o they_o we_o have_v our_o be_v our_o breed_n and_o our_o education_n from_o they_o can_v any_o expression_n of_o thankfulness_n then_o be_v too_o much_o for_o they_o if_o god_n have_v bless_v we_o with_o plenty_n and_o with_o increase_n it_o be_v for_o our_o parent_n sake_n to_o relieve_v and_o succour_v they_o in_o their_o age_n and_o in_o their_o necessity_n or_o else_o it_o be_v because_o they_o be_v faithful_a to_o god_n in_o his_o worship_n and_o service_n and_o therefore_o god_n have_v pour_v down_o his_o blessing_n upon_o we_o their_o child_n as_o it_o have_v be_v his_o usual_a custom_n so_o to_o do_v wherefore_o if_o god_n have_v deal_v bountiful_o with_o we_o and_o but_o spare_o with_o our_o parent_n we_o be_v both_o bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n to_o supply_v their_o want_n according_a to_o our_o power_n as_o god_n have_v communicate_v some_o part_n of_o his_o own_o honour_n to_o our_o parent_n by_o give_v they_o the_o title_n of_o father_n to_o preserve_v the_o pre-eminence_n which_o he_o have_v give_v they_o over_o their_o child_n so_o he_o have_v bind_v the_o child_n by_o a_o strict_a command_n to_o honour_v their_o parent_n and_o to_o express_v it_o by_o their_o reverence_n obedience_n and_o thankfulness_n to_o they_o for_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o which_o they_o can_v perform_v as_o they_o ought_v if_o they_o do_v withdraw_v any_o thing_n from_o their_o due_a honour_n and_o dignity_n or_o their_o help_a hand_n from_o they_o in_o their_o necessity_n child_n be_v not_o bind_v thus_o to_o honour_v their_o parent_n only_o in_o their_o minority_n or_o so_o long_a as_o they_o be_v under_o their_o tuition_n and_o government_n for_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n do_v not_o limit_v it_o to_o these_o time_n but_o it_o give_v the_o father_n &_o the_o mother_n this_o honour_n so_o long_o as_o they_o have_v any_o child_n live_v and_o there_o be_v a_o promise_n of_o a_o great_a blessing_n annex_v to_o this_o commandment_n child_n may_v come_v to_o be_v great_a in_o worldly_a honour_n and_o preferment_n then_o their_o parent_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o privilege_n against_o this_o command_n of_o god_n thus_o say_v paul_n 1._o paul_n eph._n 6._o 1._o child_n obey_v your_o parent_n in_o the_o lord_n for_o this_o be_v right_n and_o then_o he_o cit_v god_n commandment_n which_o bind_v they_o to_o this_o obedience_n 51._o obedience_n luk._n 2._o 51._o christ_n himself_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o parent_n until_o his_o heavenly_a father_n business_n call_v he_o away_o and_o now_o at_o his_o death_n he_o take_v order_n for_o his_o mother_n maintenance_n wherefore_o if_o child_n do_v thus_o express_v their_o thankfulness_n to_o their_o parent_n and_o do_v thus_o honour_v and_o obey_v they_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n then_o god_n will_v provide_v for_o they_o and_o their_o child_n and_o will_v perform_v his_o promise_n of_o long_a life_n and_o of_o blessing_n both_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a on_o the_o contrary_a god_n will_v curse_v the_o child_n that_o dishonour_v their_o parent_n and_o be_v in_o this_o kind_a unthankful_a to_o they_o both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v the_o darken_n of_o the_o sun_n now_o behold_v how_o god_n do_v show_v a_o miraculous_a sign_n of_o his_o high_a indsgnation_n against_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o bloody_a jew_n and_o barbarous_a gentile_n to_o his_o only_a son_n and_o how_o much_o he_o do_v hate_n and_o abhor_v their_o abominable_a sin_n 45_o sin_n mar._n 27._o 45_o for_o the_o sun_n be_v then_o total_o darken_v at_o midday_n and_o so_o continue_v for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o hour_n which_o be_v a_o far_o great_a darkness_n than_o can_v be_v by_o any_o eclipse_n as_o if_o it_o have_v disdain_v to_o look_v upon_o and_o mourn_v to_o see_v such_o a_o horrible_a fact_n as_o be_v then_o commit_v in_o crucify_a the_o lord_n of_o glory_n hereby_o also_o be_v signify_v how_o the_o glory_n 2._o glory_n mal._n 4._o 2._o of_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n be_v then_o darken_v 2._o darken_v isa_n 53._o 2._o there_o be_v no_o beauty_n in_o he_o and_o no_o comeliness_n that_o we_o shall_v desire_v he_o christ_n be_v then_o in_o the_o extremity_n of_o his_o passion_n for_o the_o floodgate_n of_o god_n wrath_n be_v set_v open_a upon_o he_o and_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n countenance_n be_v cloud_v from_o he_o which_o he_o can_v not_o regain_v until_o he_o have_v full_o satisfy_v his_o justice_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o himself_o and_o which_o do_v most_o obscure_a his_o transcendent_a beauty_n which_o be_v natural_o in_o he_o all_o this_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o we_o that_o god_n may_v look_v favourable_o upon_o we_o and_o that_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v do_v away_o by_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n also_o that_o the_o spot_n and_o pollution_n of_o they_o may_v be_v wash_v away_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n this_o miraculous_a
what_o a_o great_a punishment_n it_o be_v when_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n be_v remove_v from_o their_o place_n and_o the_o people_n fit_a in_o darkness_n and_o leave_v to_o ignorance_n and_o spiritual_a blindness_n or_o else_o to_o such_o teacher_n as_o can_v show_v they_o the_o right_a way_n to_o heavenly_a happiness_n but_o it_o be_v a_o punishment_n above_o all_o other_o when_o god_n will_v take_v away_o his_o word_n and_o gospel_n from_o a_o nation_n or_o people_n because_o they_o despise_v it_o and_o will_v not_o learn_v instruction_n by_o it_o christ_n thus_o threaten_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n 5._o ephesus_n rev._n 2._o 5._o remember_v therefore_o from_o whence_o thou_o be_v fall_v and_o repent_v and_o do_v the_o first_o work_n or_o else_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o thou_o quick_o and_o i_o will_v remove_v thy_o candlestick_n out_o of_o his_o place_n except_o thou_o repent_v darkness_n of_o understanding_n be_v one_o of_o the_o curse_n which_o god_n threaten_v to_o bring_v upon_o his_o people_n if_o they_o will_v not_o obey_v his_o law_n 26._o law_n deut._n 28._o 28_o 26._o the_o lord_n shall_v smite_v thou_o with_o blindness_n and_o thou_o shall_v grope_v at_o noon-daye_n as_o the_o blind_a grope_v in_o darkness_n and_o thou_o shall_v not_o prosper_v in_o thy_o way_n among_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o the_o prophet_n reckon_v up_o this_o be_v one_o 10._o one_o isa_n 59_o 7_o 9_o 10._o that_o they_o make_v haste_n to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n therefore_o say_v he_o be_v judgement_n far_o from_o we_o neither_o do_v justice_n overtake_v we_o we_o wait_v for_o light_n but_o behold_v obscurity_n for_o brightness_n but_o we_o walk_v in_o darkness_n we_o grope_v for_o the_o wall_n like_o the_o blind_a and_o we_o grope_v as_o if_o we_o have_v no_o eye_n we_o stumble_v at_o noonday_n as_o in_o the_o night_n we_o be_v in_o desolate_a place_n as_o dead_a man_n all_o this_o be_v true_o verify_v in_o the_o jew_n at_o this_o time_n when_o they_o shed_v the_o innocent_a blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o fearful_a judgement_n when_o god_n do_v bereave_v we_o of_o the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n of_o his_o will_n hear_v what_o the_o lord_n threaten_v by_o his_o prophet_n 12._o prophet_n amos_n 11_o 12._o behold_v the_o day_n come_v say_v the_o lord_n god_n that_o i_o will_v send_v a_o famine_n in_o the_o land_n not_o a_o famine_n of_o bread_n nor_o a_o thirst_n for_o water_n but_o of_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o shall_v wander_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o north_n even_o to_o the_o east_n they_o shall_v run_v to_o and_o fro_o to_o seek_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o miserable_a be_v the_o people_n that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o case_n for_o they_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o they_o must_v be_v save_v now_o let_v we_o meditate_v with_o faithful_a heart_n on_o the_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n who_o have_v continue_v still_o unto_o we_o the_o light_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o his_o word_n of_o truth_n to_o be_v a_o lantern_n to_o our_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n unto_o our_o path_n and_o to_o guide_v we_o into_o the_o way_n of_o true_a peace_n and_o heavenly_a felicity_n whereas_o our_o sin_n have_v just_o deserve_v that_o he_o shall_v remove_v our_o candlestick_n from_o we_o let_v we_o also_o study_v all_o thankfulness_n to_o he_o for_o so_o great_a a_o blessing_n and_o labour_n to_o improve_v it_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n 1_o life_n 1_o sam._n 3._o 1_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o judge_n until_o samuel_n time_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v precious_a there_o be_v no_o open_a vision_n wherefore_o while_o we_o do_v enjoy_v it_o we_o shall_v high_o prize_v it_o and_o embrace_v it_o with_o pure_a affection_n as_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o our_o salvation_n in_o the_o last_o place_n consider_v that_o as_o it_o be_v the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n to_o humble_v his_o only_a son_n so_o low_a before_o he_o have_v finish_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n as_o that_o the_o sun_n seem_v to_o mourn_v at_o the_o sight_n of_o it_o so_o likewise_o god_n be_v sometime_o please_v to_o bring_v his_o dear_a servant_n from_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o honour_n to_o the_o low_a condition_n of_o man_n for_o some_o end_n and_o purpose_n which_o he_o in_o his_o secret_a wisdom_n do_v intend_v either_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n or_o for_o their_o good_a it_o may_v be_v our_o case_n to_o be_v bring_v from_o plenty_n to_o penury_n from_o pleasure_n to_o pain_n from_o health_n to_o sickness_n from_o credit_n and_o honour_n to_o shame_n and_o disgrace_n but_o we_o need_v not_o repine_v at_o god_n providence_n herein_o for_o as_o he_o can_v advance_v his_o own_o glory_n by_o our_o condition_n how_o mean_a soever_o it_o be_v so_o he_o can_v and_o will_v sanctify_v our_o condition_n to_o our_o comfort_n and_o for_o our_o good_a though_o it_o be_v among_o the_o low_a degree_n of_o man_n if_o we_o do_v meek_o submit_v to_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n we_o can_v be_v bring_v so_o low_a as_o our_o gracious_a saviour_n be_v we_o can_v suffer_v so_o much_o of_o god_n fury_n as_o he_o do_v for_o he_o drink_v a_o full_a draught_n and_o the_o very_a dregs_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o tremble_v at_o god_n hand_n but_o we_o have_v a_o very_a small_a portion_n measure_v out_o to_o we_o and_o the_o bitterness_n of_o it_o will_v soon_o be_v out_o of_o our_o tasté_n 5._o tasté_n psal_n 30._o 5._o for_o the_o anger_n of_o godendure_v but_o a_o moment_n in_o his_o favour_n be_v life_n weep_v may_v endure_v for_o a_o night_n but_o joy_n come_v in_o the_o morning_n our_o cup_n of_o affliction_n be_v temper_v and_o measure_v out_o by_o christ_n according_a to_o our_o strength_n and_o it_o be_v sweeten_v with_o many_o comfort_n that_o we_o may_v willing_o take_v it_o and_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o christ_n have_v have_v full_a experience_n of_o our_o sorrow_n and_o he_o will_v compassionate_v we_o in_o our_o misery_n if_o we_o be_v oppress_v under_o the_o cross_n he_o will_v ease_v it_o in_o his_o good_a time_n if_o we_o be_v perplex_v for_o our_o sin_n he_o will_v present_v our_o condition_n to_o his_o father_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n to_o procure_v our_o atonement_n with_o god_n that_o the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n may_v again_o shine_v upon_o we_o if_o we_o do_v serious_o meditate_v on_o these_o thing_n we_o may_v faithful_o believe_v that_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n will_v at_o length_n come_v with_o heal_v in_o his_o wing_n and_o dispel_v the_o black_a cloud_n of_o affliction_n which_o have_v long_o overshadow_a we_o of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n consider_v now_o with_o all_o pious_a devotion_n to_o what_o weakness_n both_o of_o spirit_n and_o body_n our_o dear_a and_o precious_a saviour_n be_v bring_v when_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o his_o blood_n be_v waste_v his_o spirit_n be_v spend_v the_o moisture_n of_o his_o body_n be_v dry_v up_o and_o the_o time_n of_o his_o dissolution_n be_v now_o at_o hand_n now_o be_v fulfil_v that_o of_o the_o prophet_n 7_o prophet_n zech._n 13._o 7_o awake_v o_o sword_n against_o my_o shepherd_n and_o against_o the_o man_n that_o be_v my_o fellow_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n smite_v the_o shepherd_n and_o the_o sheep_n shall_v be_v scatter_v when_o christ_n be_v in_o this_o extremity_n of_o weakness_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n 28._o death_n joh._n 19_o 28._o he_o say_v i_o thirst_v by_o all_o which_o he_o do_v show_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o humanity_n this_o thirst_n be_v not_o so_o much_o for_o wine_n or_o water_n to_o refresh_v his_o faint_a spirit_n as_o it_o be_v to_o have_v our_o redemption_n finish_v that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n then_o the_o barbarous_a people_n that_o have_v no_o humanity_n in_o they_o give_v he_o vinegar_n in_o a_o sponge_n to_o drink_v which_o they_o do_v out_o of_o malice_n to_o increase_v his_o pain_n and_o misery_n but_o the_o lord_n do_v so_o order_v it_o that_o it_o be_v to_o fulfil_v this_o say_n of_o the_o psalmist_n 21._o psalmist_n psal_n 69._o 21._o they_o give_v i_o also_o gall_v for_o my_o meat_n and_o in_o my_o thirst_n they_o give_v i_o vinegar_n to_o 30_o d_o joh._n 19_o 30_o drink_v when_o christ_n have_v taste_v it_o he_o say_v it_o be_v finish_v because_o all_o the_o
do_v we_o hope_v for_o no_o great_a felicity_n than_o what_o we_o now_o enjoy_v we_o h●ve_v no_o abide_v place_n here_o but_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o change_v every_o moment_n and_o upon_o every_o small_a occasion_n 15._o occasion_n 1_o chro._n 29_o 15._o we_o be_v stranger_n and_o sojourner_n here_o our_o day_n on_o earth_n be_v as_o a_o shadow_n and_o there_o be_v none_o abide_v our_o mansion_n house_n where_o we_o must_v dwell_v for_o ever_o be_v in_o heaven_n which_o christ_n our_o saviour_n have_v prepare_v for_o we_o to_o draw_v our_o mind_n from_o all_o earthly_a delight_n which_o be_v fade_a and_o transitory_a and_o always_o mix_v and_o embitter_v with_o some_o sorrow_n and_o vexation_n that_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n may_v be_v inflame_v to_o enjoy_v that_o celestial_a happiness_n where_o we_o shall_v be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v in_o perfect_a holiness_n for_o ever_o and_o where_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o perfection_n of_o all_o blessedness_n for_o evermore_o wherefore_o 2._o wherefore_o heb._n 12._o 2._o look_v unto_o jesus_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n who_o for_o the_o joy_n that_o be_v set_v before_o he_o endure_v the_o cross_n despise_v the_o shame_n and_o be_v set_v down_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n i2_n god_n 2_o tim._n 2._o i2_n if_o we_o suffer_v with_o christ_n we_o shall_v also_o reign_v with_o he_o if_o we_o die_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v also_o live_v with_o he_o if_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v rise_v with_o he_o and_o if_o we_o partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o humiliation_n we_o shall_v also_o partake_v with_o he_o in_o his_o exaltation_n for_o the_o member_n must_v be_v make_v conformable_a to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o exaltation_n of_o our_o bless_a redeemer_n for_o though_o he_o suffer_v his_o enemy_n to_o tyrannize_v over_o he_o at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o to_o put_v he_o to_o a_o most_o cruel_a and_o shameful_a death_n upon_o the_o cross_n because_o it_o be_v his_o heavenly_a father_n will_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o yet_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o his_o deity_n and_o clothe_v himself_o with_o the_o glorious_a robe_n of_o immortality_n triumph_v over_o all_o his_o enemy_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n 24._o a_o luk._n 24._o do_v first_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o angel_n to_o the_o woman_n that_o come_v the_o three_o day_n to_o his_o sepulchre_n to_o embalm_v his_o body_n 20._o body_n john_n 20._o then_o he_o appear_v to_o mary_n and_o to_o his_o disciple_n at_o several_a time_n also_o to_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n at_o once_o and_o he_o converse_v with_o his_o disciple_n forty_o day_n upon_o earth_n before_o he_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n many_o saint_n that_o sleep_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n with_o he_o who_o also_o appear_v to_o many_o in_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o probable_o ascend_v up_o with_o he_o into_o heaven_n so_o that_o we_o may_v safe_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o resurrection_n which_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v for_o the_o well_o ground_v of_o our_o hope_n that_o our_o body_n shall_v also_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a with_o song_n of_o rejoice_v and_o triumph_n here_o be_v matter_n of_o exceed_v great_a comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n for_o our_o heart_n to_o meditate_v upon_o if_o we_o do_v steadfast_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a first_o we_o may_v be_v true_o persuade_v hereby_o that_o he_o have_v full_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o from_o our_o soul_n and_o nail_v to_o his_o cross_n so_o that_o if_o god_n look_v upon_o our_o sin_n there_o he_o will_v also_o see_v the_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n that_o be_v spill_v for_o they_o second_o we_o may_v firm_o believe_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o resurrection_n have_v get_v the_o victory_n and_o conquest_n over_o sin_n death_n hell_n and_o the_o devil_n 18_o devil_n john_n 10._o 18_o for_o as_o he_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n so_o he_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o up_o again_o christ_n have_v likewise_o take_v away_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n and_o have_v pull_v out_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n in_o that_o he_o have_v fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n and_o full_o satisfy_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n 56._o law_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 56._o for_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n wherefore_o we_o may_v now_o draw_v virtue_n and_o grace_n from_o christ_n to_o overpower_v all_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n 1._o nature_n eph._n 2._o 1._o and_o though_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n yet_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o will_v quicken_v we_o and_o raise_v we_o up_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n and_o will_v give_v we_o a_o spiritual_a life_n to_o live_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n to_o he_o here_o that_o we_o may_v live_v the_o life_n of_o glory_n with_o he_o hereafter_o for_o ever_o why_o then_o shall_v we_o fear_v death_n that_o have_v no_o sting_n to_o wound_v we_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o smile_v upon_o it_o see_v christ_n have_v sanctify_v it_o to_o we_o why_o shall_v we_o fear_v the_o devil_n with_o a_o servile_a fear_n see_v christ_n have_v redeem_v we_o out_o of_o his_o bondage_n his_o malice_n may_v molest_v and_o trouble_v we_o if_o we_o be_v not_o well_o arm_v with_o faith_n but_o christ_n have_v weaken_v his_o power_n below_o our_o strength_n when_o our_o bodieslye_o in_o the_o dust_n our_o soul_n will_v be_v out_o of_o the_o devil_n reach_v for_o christ_n will_v take_v they_o up_o to_o himself_o into_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n where_o the_o devil_n can_v come_v for_o he_o be_v cast_v down_o into_o utter_a darkness_n he_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o tempt_v or_o afflict_v we_o while_o we_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o christ_n who_o we_o serve_v will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o prevail_v against_o we_o three_o see_v christ_n our_o head_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a we_o also_o that_o be_v his_o member_n must_v rise_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n for_o the_o head_n will_v draw_v all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n with_o it_o christ_n have_v redeem_v our_o body_n from_o the_o grave_n as_o well_o as_o our_o soul_n from_o death_n if_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o raise_v again_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n our_o redemption_n be_v not_o perfect_o wrought_v also_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n and_o if_o death_n have_v power_n to_o keep_v they_o still_o in_o the_o grave_n than_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v not_o firm_a and_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o able_a to_o keep_v we_o close_o unto_o he_o and_o our_o hope_n be_v not_o steadfast_a but_o death_n have_v not_o this_o power_n the_o grave_n will_v open_v and_o deliver_v up_o their_o dead_a and_o our_o body_n shall_v rise_v again_o to_o enjoy_v that_o unconceivable_a happiness_n with_o our_o soul_n of_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v for_o ever_o with_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n because_o christ_n our_o head_n be_v rise_v last_o our_o chief_a comfort_n depend_v upon_o our_o resurrection_n to_o glory_n for_o in_o this_o life_n we_o find_v nothing_o but_o labour_n and_o travel_n sorrow_n and_o trouble_n vexation_n and_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n our_o hope_n of_o future_a rest_n and_o peace_n of_o joy_n and_o comfort_n happiness_n and_o glory_n do_v sweeten_v all_o our_o affliction_n here_o and_o make_v we_o bear_v they_o content_o and_o cheerful_o for_o as_o david_n say_v 11._o say_v psal_n 58._o 11._o very_o there_o be_v a_o reward_n for_o the_o righteous_a and_o this_o reward_n be_v in_o heaven_n now_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a our_o hope_n be_v vain_a our_o comfort_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o our_o life_n be_v most_o miserable_a of_o all_o man_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 15._o paul_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 15._o if_o in_o this_o life_n only_o we_o have_v hope_n in_o christ_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a for_o we_o shall_v never_o enjoy_v this_o reward_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v but_o our_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o sure_a promise_n of_o god_n which_o can_v deceive_v we_o concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n unto_o glory_n which_o will_v yield_v we_o unspeakable_a consolation_n when_o we_o serious_o meditate_v upon_o it_o wherefore_o now_o raise_v
the_o sanctify_a grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n may_v season_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o walk_v before_o he_o in_o holiness_n and_o pureness_n of_o live_v all_o our_o day_n wherefore_o now_o our_o affliction_n and_o trouble_n which_o be_v part_n of_o this_o curse_n be_v sanctify_v to_o we_o and_o make_v salubrious_a and_o wholesome_a for_o our_o good_a and_o the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n which_o we_o suffer_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o be_v change_v into_o fatherly_a chastisement_n to_o correct_v we_o for_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v walk_v more_o obedient_o before_o god_n or_o else_o they_o be_v to_o try_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o grace_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n that_o give_v they_o four_o this_o be_v another_o great_a advantage_n and_o gain_n that_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n which_o unregenerate_a man_n can_v find_v that_o he_o have_v also_o free_v we_o from_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n for_o though_o sin_n will_v dwell_v with_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n yet_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o sin_n be_v weaken_v and_o kill_v by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o that_o grace_n which_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o by_o his_o death_n the_o best_a of_o god_n servant_n do_v often_o complain_v how_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n in_o they_o do_v sometime_o prevail_v against_o the_o spirit_n which_o make_v they_o groan_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o corruption_n as_o holy_a david_n and_o other_o have_v do_v paul_n also_o find_v this_o to_o be_v true_a for_o thus_o he_o say_v 19_o say_v rom._n 7._o 18_o 19_o i_o know_v that_o in_o i_o that_o be_v in_o my_o flesh_n dwell_v no_o good_a thing_n for_o to_o will_n be_v present_a with_o i_o but_o how_o to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a i_o find_v not_o for_o the_o good_a that_o i_o will_v i_o do_v not_o but_o the_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o do_v and_o he_o have_v no_o power_n but_o only_o from_o christ_n to_o be_v free_v from_o this_o dominion_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o he_o cry_v out_o say_v 25._o say_v rom_n 7._o 24_o 25._o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n i_o thank_v god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n for_o he_o find_v this_o benefit_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n for_o say_v he_o 21._o he_o phil._n 1._o 21._o to_o i_o to_o live_v be_v christ_n and_o to_o die_v be_v gain_v or_o else_o we_o may_v read_v it_o thus_o for_o christ_n be_v to_o i_o both_o in_o life_n and_o in_o death_n advantage_n this_o be_v not_o the_o gain_n which_o natural_a man_n look_v for_o they_o seek_v after_o the_o gain_n of_o riches_n the_o gain_n of_o honour_n and_o the_o gain_n of_o worldly_a preferment_n they_o look_v not_o after_o spiritual_a gain_n they_o do_v not_o esteem_v of_o virtue_n and_o godliness_n piety_n towards_o god_n be_v out_o of_o request_n with_o they_o though_o it_o be_v the_o true_a gain_n and_o most_o to_o be_v desire_v five_o that_o we_o may_v get_v this_o spiritual_a gain_n of_o godliness_n which_o be_v the_o advantage_n only_o of_o a_o true_a believer_n christ_n do_v wash_v we_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o therefore_o he_o bestow_v all_o sanctify_a and_o save_v grace_n upon_o we_o to_o purify_v we_o from_o the_o silth_n and_o pollution_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o christ_n do_v unite_v we_o unto_o himself_o by_o faith_n whereby_o we_o be_v clothe_v with_o his_o righteousness_n and_o have_v all_o the_o benefit_n that_o come_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n then_o faith_n draw_v in_o with_o it_o all_o other_o sanctify_a grace_n to_o make_v we_o complete_a and_o perfect_a in_o christ_n to_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v our_o soul_n that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o virtuous_a and_o pious_a life_n in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o true_a holiness_n 2_o holiness_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 2_o christ_n do_v also_o give_v we_o a_o holy_a desire_n to_o the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o 18._o in_o 2_o pet._n 3._o 18._o grace_n and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o we_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n 24_o god_n rom._n 3._o 24_o by_o who_o grace_n &_o love_n we_o be_v free_o justify_v through_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n 8._o christ_n eph._n 2._o 8._o by_o who_o free_a grace_n also_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n in_o christ_n save_v grace_n be_v one_o of_o the_o special_a gift_n that_o christ_n give_v after_o his_o ascension_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 7._o paul_n eph._n 4._o 7._o but_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n 9_o christ_n heb._n 13_o 9_o wherefore_o if_o our_o heart_n be_v establish_v with_o the_o grace_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v carry_v about_o with_o diverse_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n but_o we_o shall_v stand_v firm_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v purge_v from_o dead_a work_n six_o we_o have_v this_o great_a advantage_n by_o christ_n above_o all_o other_o man_n 7._o man_n gal._n 4._o 5_o 6_o 7._o that_o by_o he_o we_o receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n and_o thereby_o we_o enjoy_v all_o the_o privilege_n that_o belong_v to_o son_n for_o god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o our_o heart_n cry_v abba_n father_n and_o we_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n wherefore_o 16._o wherefore_o heb._n 4._o 16._o in_o he_o we_o may_v come_v bold_o unto_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n by_o prayer_n that_o we_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n and_o find_v grace_n to_o help_v in_o time_n of_o need_n for_o god_n will_v have_v a_o fatherly_a care_n of_o we_o to_o protect_v we_o in_o all_o danger_n to_o provide_v whatsoever_o be_v good_a for_o we_o and_o to_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o sorrow_n and_o distress_n 4._o distress_n psal_n 9_o 9_o isa_n 25._o 4._o thus_o be_v god_n a_o refuge_n and_o a_o shield_n of_o defence_n to_o david_n and_o to_o other_o holy_a man_n in_o their_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n if_o his_o rod_n of_o correction_n be_v upon_o we_o it_o will_v be_v in_o love_n 6._o love_n heb._n 12._o 6._o as_o a_o father_n chasten_v his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v we_o as_o his_o son_n and_o though_o we_o feel_v his_o visitation_n sharp_a 31_o sharp_a lam._n 3._o 31_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o cast_v we_o off_o for_o ever_o for_o 30._o for_o eph._n 4_o 30._o we_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n 12._o redemption_n heb._n 6._o 12._o that_o we_o may_v through_o faith_n and_o patience_n inherit_v the_o promise_n 4._o promise_n 1_o pet._n 1_o 4._o as_o heir_n to_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o undefiled_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o away_o reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o last_o christ_n have_v seal_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o we_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n whereby_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o strict_a keep_n of_o the_o legal_a covenant_n of_o work_n and_o christ_n will_v perfect_v with_o his_o own_o righteousness_n whatsoever_o be_v want_v in_o we_o to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n if_o we_o endeavour_v the_o best_a we_o can_v with_o a_o upright_a heart_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o than_o god_n in_o mercy_n will_v accept_v of_o our_o imperfect_a obedience_n for_o his_o sake_n this_o new_a covenant_n which_o christ_n have_v procure_v for_o we_o will_v admit_v of_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o and_o also_o of_o our_o true_a repentance_n for_o our_o sin_n which_o the_o legal_a covenant_n will_v not_o because_o it_o require_v perfect_a and_o personal_a obedience_n to_o every_o tittle_n of_o the_o law_n both_o in_o thought_n in_o word_n and_o in_o deed_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o new_a covenant_n 34._o covenant_n jer._n 31._o 33_o 34._o god_n be_v our_o god_n and_o he_o will_v forgive_v all_o our_o iniquity_n and_o will_v remember_v our_o sin_n no_o more_o upon_o condition_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n 24._o christ_n heb._n 12._o 24._o who_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o this_o covenant_n and_o that_o with_o our_o faith_n we_o join_v piety_n and_o new_a obedience_n christ_n have_v also_o give_v we_o his_o sacrament_n whereby_o this_o covenant_n be_v seal_v to_o we_o if_o we_o do_v worthy_o partake_v of_o they_o but_o of_o this_o covenant_n and_o also_o of_o the_o sacrament_n i_o have_v write_v more_o full_o in_o another_o treatise_n now_o meditate_v with_o a_o holy_a devotion_n upon_o all_o these_o advantage_n which_o every_o
will_v still_o reign_v in_o we_o though_o we_o can_v actual_o commit_v sin_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o do_v spiritual_o feed_v upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n at_o the_o lord_n table_n we_o do_v then_o seal_v this_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o comfort_n of_o all_o those_o promise_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o this_o spiritual_a food_n be_v the_o fruit_n that_o the_o spouse_n do_v feed_v upon_o 3._o upon_o cant._n 2._o 3._o which_o be_v so_o sweet_a to_o her_o taste_n and_o we_o shall_v also_o find_v the_o same_o sweetness_n in_o that_o bless_a fruit_n but_o if_o we_o come_v to_o that_o holy_a supper_n with_o mind_n full_a of_o worldly_a care_n or_o sinful_a lust_n and_o with_o heart_n full_a of_o hypocrisy_n and_o unbelief_n we_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v damnation_n to_o ourselves_o we_o need_v not_o now_o envy_v at_o the_o prosperity_n of_o ungodly_a man_n their_o wealth_n be_v their_o snare_n to_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o path_n of_o perdition_n their_o gain_n be_v their_o loss_n their_o pleasure_n will_v be_v their_o pain_n and_o their_o sweetness_n will_v be_v bitterness_n to_o they_o in_o the_o end_n so_o that_o what_o gain_n soever_o they_o make_v of_o this_o world_n if_o they_o do_v not_o also_o gain_v christ_n with_o it_o they_o will_v find_v no_o advantage_n nor_o true_a comfort_n by_o it_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o rich_a man_n and_o a_o dishonour_n for_o such_o as_o be_v in_o eminent_a place_n of_o authority_n if_o they_o be_v not_o true_o virtuous_a and_o religious_a this_o heavenly_a gain_n be_v peculiar_a only_o to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n which_o they_o have_v only_o by_o christ_n and_o they_o seek_v it_o not_o where_o but_o of_o he_o our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o death_n as_o christ_n be_v our_o spiritual_a gain_n in_o this_o life_n so_o he_o be_v no_o less_o our_o advantage_n and_o gain_n in_o our_o death_n for_o he_o have_v so_o conquer_v death_n that_o it_o shall_v neither_o sting_v we_o nor_o hurt_v we_o though_o we_o must_v at_o god_n appoint_a time_n yield_v and_o submit_v unto_o it_o death_n of_o itself_o be_v a_o terrible_a enemy_n and_o destructive_a to_o our_o whole_a nature_n and_o it_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o curse_n for_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n but_o christ_n have_v make_v it_o our_o friend_n and_o have_v take_v the_o curse_n from_o it_o so_o that_o if_o we_o live_v a_o holy_a and_o pious_a life_n in_o christ_n we_o shall_v also_o die_v a_o comfortable_a and_o a_o christian_a death_n in_o he_o 12_o he_o rom._n 5._o 12_o by_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o death_n by_o sin_n and_o so_o death_n pass_v upon_o all_o man_n for_o that_o all_o have_v sin_v 2d_o sin_v heb._n 9_o 2d_o therefore_o it_o be_v appoint_v unto_o all_o man_n once_o to_o die_v and_o after_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n thus_o say_v the_o psalmist_n 48_o psalmist_n psal_n 89._o 48_o what_o man_n be_v be_v that_o live_v and_o shall_v not_o see_v death_n shall_v he_o deliver_v his_o soul_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o grave_n paul_n say_v 7_o say_v 2_o cor._n 4._o 7_o that_o our_o body_n be_v but_o earthen_a vessel_n which_o be_v soon_o break_v or_o 1._o or_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 1._o earthly_a house_n which_o be_v soon_o dissolve_v the_o wise_a man_n have_v no_o privilege_n from_o death_n more_o than_o the_o fool_n one_o event_n happen_v to_o they_o both_o 16_o both_o eccl._n 2._o 14_o 16_o how_o die_v the_o wise_a man_n as_o the_o fool_n say_v the_o preacher_n 20_o preacher_n eccl._n 3._o 20_o all_o go_v unto_o one_o place_n both_o high_a and_o low_a rich_a and_o poor_a all_o be_v of_o the_o dust_n and_o all_o turn_n to_o dust_n again_o for_o we_o must_v be_v conform_v to_o christ_n in_o his_o death_n if_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v conform_v to_o he_o in_o his_o resurrection_n this_o be_v the_o way_n that_o every_o man_n must_v go_v before_o he_o can_v 23._o h_o rom._n 3._o 23._o come_v to_o eternal_a life_n for_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o come_v short_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 23_o god_n rom_n 6._o 23_o and_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o none_o can_v escape_v the_o stroke_n of_o death_n but_o that_o it_o will_v seize_v upon_o all_o flesh_n with_o a_o unresistible_a power_n we_o ought_v then_o to_o be_v always_o well_o prepare_v that_o death_n may_v not_o come_v sudden_o upon_o we_o to_o take_v we_o away_o in_o our_o sin_n before_o we_o have_v make_v our_o peace_n with_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o before_o we_o have_v get_v a_o modest_a and_o sober_a assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n by_o true_a repentance_n that_o we_o may_v willing_o part_v with_o this_o world_n and_o comfortable_o resign_v up_o our_o soul_n to_o god_n in_o full_a hope_n that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o better_a life_n hereafter_n for_o evermore_o and_o this_o preparation_n for_o death_n be_v only_o by_o christ_n consider_v now_o that_o christ_n will_v fit_v and_o prepare_v we_o for_o death_n and_o will_v also_o fit_v a_o death_n for_o we_o which_o shall_v make_v most_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o be_v most_o advantageous_a to_o we_o and_o he_o will_v so_o sanctify_v it_o to_o we_o that_o our_o gain_n thereby_o shall_v be_v far_o great_a than_o our_o loss_n if_o we_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n or_o for_o the_o lord_n death_n may_v part_v our_o soul_n from_o our_o body_n but_o it_o can_v part_v our_o soul_n from_o christ_n the_o soul_n may_v be_v part_v for_o a_o time_n from_o a_o crazy_a disease_a and_o corruptible_a body_n which_o be_v but_o a_o earthly_a tabernacle_n but_o we_o shall_v receive_v the_o same_o body_n again_o in_o full_a strength_n in_o perfect_a beauty_n and_o incorruptible_a free_a from_o ache_n or_o disease_n from_o decay_n or_o corruption_n death_n may_v take_v our_o soul_n out_o of_o a_o world_n of_o misery_n and_o calamity_n of_o sorrow_n trouble_n and_o vexation_n but_o it_o will_v present_o convey_v they_o into_o a_o haven_n of_o rest_n and_o into_o a_o heaven_n of_o happiness_n where_o there_o be_v no_o labour_n nor_o toil_n no_o trouble_n nor_o sorrow_n but_o perfect_a peace_n and_o fullness_n of_o joy_n for_o ever_o and_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o to_o enjoy_v the_o same_o blessedness_n with_o our_o soul_n 1._o soul_n 2_o cor._n 5._o 1._o death_n may_v dissolve_v the_o earthly_a house_n of_o our_o tabernacle_n but_o we_o have_v a_o build_n of_o god_n a_o house_n not_o make_v with_o hand_n eternal_a in_o the_o heaven_n what_o if_o we_o lose_v our_o land_n and_o possession_n whereunto_o we_o be_v but_o tenant_n at_o will_n 4_o will_n ●_o pet._n 1._o 3_o 4_o we_o have_v a_o lively_a hope_n by_o christ_n to_o enjoy_v a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a and_o undefiled_a and_o that_o fade_v not_o away_o reserve_v in_o heaven_n for_o we_o death_n may_v take_v we_o from_o our_o earthly_a friend_n but_o it_o will_v bring_v we_o into_o the_o society_n of_o the_o glorious_a angel_n and_o bless_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o to_o be_v wed_v to_o christ_n our_o belove_a for_o ever_o to_o who_o in_o this_o life_n we_o be_v but_o espouse_v consider_v in_o the_o next_o place_n for_o our_o further_a comfort_n that_o we_o have_v this_o advantage_n by_o christ_n above_o other_o man_n when_o we_o be_v to_o die_v 56._o die_v 1_o cor._n 15._o 55_o 56._o that_o death_n have_v nothing_o to_o hurt_v we_o sin_n have_v no_o power_n to_o condemn_v we_o and_o therefore_o death_n can_v bind_v we_o over_o unto_o judgement_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n ●5_n prophet_n isa_n 42_o ●5_n i_o even_o i_o be_o he_o that_o blot_v out_o thy_o transgression_n for_o my_o own_o sake_n and_o will_v not_o remember_v thy_o sin_n how_o can_v death_n then_o be_v any_o way_n hurtful_a to_o we_o as_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n so_o he_o will_v also_o fasten_v all_o our_o good_a work_n and_o pious_a duty_n to_o our_o soul_n which_o will_v go_v with_o we_o to_o the_o grave_n 13_o grave_n rev._n 14._o 13_o and_o will_v follow_v we_o to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v have_v in_o remembrance_n then_o before_o god_n this_o be_v a_o bless_a advantage_n that_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n in_o death_n above_o other_o man_n that_o have_v no_o interest_n in_o christ_n for_o their_o evil_a work_n cleave_v so_o close_o to_o their_o soul_n that_o they_o will_v follow_v they_o unto_o judgement_n to_o increase_v their_o torment_n in_o their_o condemnation_n thus_o say_v paul_n 24._o paul_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 24._o some_o man_n sin_n be_v open_a before_o hand_n
go_v before_o to_o judgement_n and_o some_o man_n follow_v after_o zophar_n also_o say_v thus_o of_o the_o wicked_a 11_o wicked_a job_n 20._o 11_o his_o bone_n be_v full_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o youth_n which_o shall_v lie_v down_o with_o he_o in_o the_o dust_n consider_v also_o that_o christ_n through_o his_o own_o death_n have_v destroy_v the_o devil_n 14_o devil_n heb._n 2._o 14_o that_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n so_o that_o now_o the_o devil_n be_v most_o weak_a against_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o death_n whereas_o to_o the_o wicked_a he_o be_v a_o strong_a enemy_n and_o will_v not_o be_v beat_v from_o their_o beds-foot_n until_o he_o have_v get_v their_o soul_n which_o be_v give_v he_o for_o a_o prey_n 22_o prey_n luk._n 10._o 22_o but_o god_n have_v appoint_v his_o holy_a angel_n to_o attend_v upon_o his_o child_n when_o they_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n and_o to_o receive_v their_o soul_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o death_n to_o carry_v they_o up_o into_o abraham_n bosom_n this_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n and_o benefit_n to_o they_o when_o they_o be_v to_o leave_v this_o world_n and_o it_o be_v such_o a_o gain_n as_o no_o natural_a and_o unregenerate_a man_n can_v expect_v wherefore_o 10_o wherefore_o 2_o pet._n 1._o 10_o we_o ought_v to_o use_v all_o care_n and_o diligence_n to_o make_v our_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a and_o to_o make_v sure_a our_o union_n with_o christ_n by_o faith_n that_o so_o we_o may_v live_v a_o sanctify_a life_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o let_v death_n come_v how_o or_o when_o it_o will_v we_o shall_v undoubted_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o death_n may_v come_v in_o a_o hour_n or_o in_o a_o moment_n when_o we_o look_v not_o for_o it_o it_o may_v break_v in_o upon_o we_o like_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n and_o take_v away_o our_o soul_n at_o unaware_o but_o this_o need_v not_o trouble_v we_o for_o if_o our_o life_n have_v be_v holy_a and_o upright_a towards_o god_n our_o death_n can_v be_v but_o sanctify_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n who_o will_v keep_v our_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o if_o we_o have_v no_o other_o power_n to_o preserve_v they_o from_o destruction_n but_o what_o nature_n or_o common_a grace_n can_v afford_v we_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o encounter_v with_o death_n to_o make_v any_o advantage_n by_o it_o for_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n will_v decay_v in_o we_o and_o common_a grace_n can_v give_v we_o no_o antidote_n against_o the_o sting_n of_o death_n it_o be_v only_a faith_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o true_a antidote_n against_o the_o terror_n of_o death_n and_o against_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n nature_n can_v give_v we_o no_o balm_n to_o heal_v the_o wound_n and_o putrid_a sore_n that_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n which_o must_v be_v cure_v before_o we_o go_v hence_o or_o else_o death_n will_v deliver_v they_o up_o in_o such_o a_o loathsome_a condition_n as_o that_o god_n will_v not_o accept_v they_o 11_o they_o jer._n 46._o 11_o but_o if_o we_o go_v up_o to_o mount_n gilead_n we_o shall_v find_v balm_n there_o which_o will_v cure_v we_o of_o all_o our_o spiritual_a disease_n for_o in_o vain_a we_o shall_v use_v many_o medicine_n if_o we_o neglect_v this_o balm_n which_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 22._o jer._n ●_o 22._o there_o be_v balm_n in_o gilead_n there_o be_v a_o physician_n even_o jesus_n christ_n our_o bless_a redeemer_n that_o can_v recover_v the_o health_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o can_v rescue_v they_o out_o of_o the_o jaw_n of_o death_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n now_o let_v the_o meditation_n of_o thy_o heart_n be_v continual_o how_o to_o enjoy_v christ_n in_o thy_o life_n that_o thy_o soul_n may_v enjoy_v he_o at_o thy_o death_n and_o how_o to_o make_v the_o true_a gain_n of_o thy_o time_n here_o that_o when_o death_n shall_v bereave_v thou_o of_o all_o time_n christ_n may_v be_v then_o thy_o gain_n for_o ever_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v any_o hope_n of_o a_o comfortable_a death_n thou_o must_v labour_v to_o live_v a_o holy_a life_n unto_o god_n for_o a_o vicious_a and_o sinful_a life_n can_v give_v thou_o no_o assurance_n of_o a_o bless_a death_n and_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o thy_o redeemer_n in_o thy_o life_n he_o will_v not_o be_v thy_o saviour_n at_o thy_o death_n to_o save_v thy_o soul_n from_o destruction_n and_o to_o bring_v it_o to_o eternal_a bliss_n also_o if_o thou_o desire_v to_o enjoy_v heavenly_a felicity_n with_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n thou_o must_v so_o live_v in_o the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n that_o thou_o may_v die_v in_o his_o favour_n and_o then_o death_n will_v open_v the_o door_n and_o give_v thy_o soul_n free_a passage_n to_o enjoy_v it_o all_o the_o good_a that_o christ_n have_v procure_v for_o we_o by_o his_o death_n can_v be_v full_o enjoy_v in_o this_o life_n but_o be_v reserve_v for_o we_o in_o heaven_n which_o we_o must_v come_v to_o possess_v by_o death_n and_o therefore_o christ_n will_v so_o prepare_v we_o for_o it_o with_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o will_v also_o prepare_v death_n for_o we_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o hinder_v we_o of_o these_o great_a benefit_n but_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o full_a possession_n of_o they_o if_o we_o do_v well_o consider_v and_o faithful_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v this_o gain_n by_o christ_n in_o our_o death_n how_o will_v it_o strengthen_v we_o against_o the_o fear_n and_o terror_n of_o death_n how_o will_v it_o confirm_v we_o in_o a_o steadfast_a hope_n of_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n how_o will_v it_o stir_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o live_v as_o become_v the_o child_n of_o god_n that_o death_n may_v deliver_v up_o our_o soul_n unto_o he_o and_o how_o willing_o shall_v we_o part_v with_o this_o world_n if_o we_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n to_o enjoy_v a_o far_o better_a inheritance_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v but_o christ_n be_v no_o gain_n to_o unregenerate_a man_n in_o their_o death_n for_o as_o they_o will_v not_o know_v he_o in_o their_o life_n so_o he_o will_v not_o know_v they_o when_o they_o die_v but_o will_v leave_v they_o to_o the_o power_n of_o death_n to_o bind_v they_o over_o unto_o judgement_n death_n will_v bereave_v they_o of_o all_o their_o wealth_n and_o possession_n it_o will_v strip_v they_o of_o all_o their_o rich_a jewel_n and_o precious_a ornament_n it_o will_v lay_v their_o honour_n in_o the_o dust_n it_o will_v take_v away_o all_o their_o beauty_n strength_n and_o comeliness_n which_o be_v their_o pride_n and_o it_o will_v leave_v they_o nothing_o but_o their_o winding-sheet_n neither_o will_v it_o give_v they_o any_o recompense_n for_o all_o their_o loss_n but_o shame_n and_o confusion_n pain_n and_o torment_n which_o never_o shall_v have_v end_n 16._o end_n luk._n 16._o thus_o it_o be_v with_o the_o rich_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n for_o death_n take_v he_o away_o from_o all_o that_o he_o have_v and_o leave_v he_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o little_a water_n to_o cool_v his_o tongue_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o torment_a flame_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o all_o rich_a man_n if_o they_o be_v not_o rich_a in_o faith_n and_o in_o grace_n but_o some_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o die_v through_o humane_a frailty_n and_o weakness_n though_o they_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n 41._o grace_n mat._n 26._o 41._o for_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v ready_a though_o the_o flesh_n be_v weak_a other_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o a_o better_a life_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v willing_o keep_v this_o which_o they_o now_o enjoy_v some_o again_o have_v their_o heart_n and_o affection_n so_o glue_v to_o earthly_a thing_n that_o the_o very_a thought_n of_o death_n be_v bitter_a to_o they_o other_o also_o be_v loath_a to_o die_v because_o they_o can_v provide_v for_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o they_o have_v none_o to_o take_v care_n of_o they_o though_o god_n require_v this_o christian_a care_n of_o they_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o distrust_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n who_o eye_n of_o providence_n be_v upon_o all_o his_o creature_n then_o much_o more_o upon_o those_o that_o belong_v unto_o he_o but_o when_o we_o have_v do_v our_o best_a endeavour_n in_o a_o honest_a calling_n to_o provide_v for_o they_o &_o yet_o must_v leave_v they_o scant_o of_o mean_n for_o their_o subsistence_n then_o god_n will_v have_v a_o special_a care_n of_o such_o widow_n &_o fatherless_a child_n &_o therefore_o he_o have_v give_v many_o strict_a command_n concern_v they_o and_o he_o have_v make_v many_o promise_n of_o protection_n help_n and_o comfort_n to_o
with_o christ_n and_o have_v raise_v we_o up_o together_o and_o make_v we_o sit_v together_o in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o he_o may_v show_v the_o exceed_a riches_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o kindness_n towards_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n 23_o jesus_n eph._n 4._o 23_o this_o renovation_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n through_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n that_o by_o he_o we_o may_v be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o spiritual_a life_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o signification_n of_o his_o name_n for_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n he_o be_v anoint_v of_o god_n and_o as_o he_o be_v jesus_n he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n to_o save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o work_v salvation_n for_o we_o whereof_o we_o be_v not_o capable_a until_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n wrought_v in_o we_o thus_o say_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n 3_o christ_n cant._n 1._o 3_o thy_o name_n be_v as_o ointment_n pour_v forth_o a_o precious_a ointment_n have_v many_o excellent_a virtue_n 15._o virtue_n psal_n 104._o 15._o for_o it_o make_v a_o cheerful_a countenance_n it_o comfort_v and_o strengthen_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n it_o heal_v all_o disease_n and_o it_o send_v forth_o a_o sweet_a savour_n when_o it_o be_v pour_v out_o which_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v all_o the_o sense_n thus_o be_v christ_n to_o every_o true_a believer_n soul_n he_o be_v the_o anoint_v of_o god_n as_o say_v the_o psalmist_n of_o he_o 7._o he_o psal_n 45._o 7._o thou_o love_v righteousness_n and_o hate_v wickedness_n therefore_o god_n thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n 38_o fellow_n act._n 10._o 38_o for_o he_o be_v anoint_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o power_n first_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o holy_a unction_n christ_n do_v put_v a_o spiritual_a light_n into_o our_o understanding_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o we_o may_v see_v how_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o godliness_n and_o truth_n according_a to_o this_o of_o old_a simeon_n 32._o simeon_n lu._n 2._o 31_o 32._o that_o god_n have_v prepare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o light_n to_o lighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o to_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o people_n israel_n 11_o israel_n psal_n 97._o 11_o light_n be_v sow_o for_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o comfort_n and_o gladness_n of_o it_o for_o the_o upright_a in_o heart_n this_o prophecy_n be_v fulfil_v in_o christ_n 9_o christ_n isa_n 2._o 9_o the_o people_n that_o walk_v in_o darkness_n have_v see_v a_o great_a light_n they_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n upon_o they_o have_v the_o light_n shine_v 14_o shine_v eph._n 5._o 14_o wherefore_o awake_v thou_o that_o sleep_v in_o fin_n and_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o christ_n shall_v give_v thou_o light_n if_o we_o want_v this_o heavenly_a light_n we_o must_v needs_o wander_v and_o go_v astray_o from_o god_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o obtain_v such_o a_o light_n but_o by_o christ_n it_o be_v sin_n that_o have_v bring_v this_o darkness_n and_o this_o spiritual_a death_n upon_o our_o soul_n and_o none_o but_o christ_n can_v take_v it_o away_o this_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o our_o spiritual_a life_n when_o we_o have_v some_o light_n to_o discern_v the_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o our_o soul_n second_o christ_n be_v the_o food_n and_o nourishment_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o preserve_v this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o who_o flesh_n we_o must_v spiritual_o eat_v and_o who_o blood_n we_o must_v spiritual_o drink_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o his_o word_n preach_v and_o sacramental_o when_o we_o come_v to_o his_o holy_a table_n or_o else_o we_o have_v not_o this_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o 53._o we_o john_n 6._o 48_o 53._o i_o be_o that_o bread_n of_o life_n say_v christ_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n who_o so_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n and_o i_o will_v raise_v he_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n for_o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o wherefore_o if_o our_o soul_n do_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o this_o heavenly_a food_n and_o do_v earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v refresh_v and_o full_o satisfy_v therewith_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a sign_n that_o there_o be_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o we_o for_o christ_n do_v free_o offer_v himself_o to_o every_o empty_a soul_n that_o can_v feed_v upon_o he_o by_o faith_n in_o his_o word_n or_o in_o his_o sacrament_n but_o if_o our_o desire_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v take_v up_o with_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n and_o of_o earthly_a vanity_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o we_o have_v no_o hunger_n nor_o thirst_n after_o christ_n and_o that_o we_o feel_v so_o little_a want_n and_o need_v of_o he_o three_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a balm_n to_o heal_v and_o cure_v all_o the_o disease_n and_o wound_n that_o sin_n have_v make_v in_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v like_o 34_o like_o lu._n 10._o 34_o the_o good_a samaritan_n wine_n and_o oil_n for_o it_o have_v a_o cleanse_n and_o a_o heal_a virtue_n there_o can_v be_v no_o wound_n so_o deep_a in_o the_o soul_n and_o no_o ulcer_n so_o fester_v but_o this_o precious_a ointment_n will_v cleanse_v and_o heal_v it_o if_o it_o be_v right_o apply_v by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n for_o repentance_n lay_v open_v the_o wound_n by_o true_a confession_n and_o faith_n appli_v the_o remedy_n to_o it_o and_o then_o repentance_n give_v we_o a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v cure_v this_o be_v the_o way_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o recovery_n when_o our_o soul_n be_v sick_a of_o any_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o also_o to_o preserve_v that_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v in_o we_o last_o when_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n that_o flow_v from_o christ_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o our_o soul_n they_o will_v great_o refresh_v and_o comfort_v our_o spirit_n in_o all_o sadness_n of_o heart_n and_o they_o will_v so_o presume_v all_o our_o action_n and_o service_n which_o we_o perform_v unto_o god_n that_o their_o sweet_a savour_n shall_v ascend_v up_o unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v smell_v it_o and_o gracious_o accept_v of_o we_o and_o of_o our_o offering_n 21._o offering_n gen._n 8._o 21._o when_o noah_n offer_v burn_v offering_n to_o the_o lord_n after_o the_o flood_n the_o lord_n smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n and_o accept_v his_o sacrifice_n and_o bless_v he_o exceed_o wherefore_o if_o our_o soul_n be_v perfume_v with_o grace_n they_o will_v so_o perfume_v all_o our_o holy_a oblation_n which_o we_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v in_o mercy_n accept_v they_o for_o his_o son_n sake_n 8._o sake_n i_o rev_v 5._o 8._o but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o stink_v in_o his_o nostril_n because_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o corrupt_a and_o unclean_a heart_n which_o be_v not_o perfume_v with_o grace_n how_o much_o 1_o ●_o eccl._n 10._o 1_o more_o when_o he_o bring_v they_o with_o a_o wicked_a mind_n 27_o ●o_o 21._o 27_o sin_n be_v like_o dead_a fly_n in_o the_o ointment_n of_o the_o apothecary_n which_o cause_v it_o to_o stink_v for_o sin_n make_v we_o odious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n wherefore_o take_v heed_n with_o what_o heart_n thou_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o thou_o bring_v no_o oblation_n to_o he_o with_o a_o wicked_a mind_n but_o first_o purify_v thy_o heart_n from_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o see_v that_o thy_o soul_n be_v perfume_v with_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o then_o come_v and_o offer_v thy_o gift_n and_o god_n will_v accept_v it_o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o sin_n in_o thy_o bosom_n unrepented_a of_o or_o any_o iniquity_n in_o thy_o heart_n which_o thou_o seek_v to_o hide_v from_o god_n than_o he_o can_v smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n of_o thy_o prayer_n of_o thy_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n or_o of_o any_o duty_n which_o thou_o perform_v to_o he_o to_o make_v it_o accept_v because_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o upright_o before_o god_n now_o we_o must_v examine_v ourselves_o what_o spiritual_a life_n we_o have_v by_o christ_n and_o we_o must_v know_v how_o he_o be_v our_o spiritual_a life_n if_o we_o will_v have_v any_o comfort_n thereby_o first_o 20_o first_o 1_o joh._n 2._o 20_o if_o we_o have_v this_o holy_a unction_n from_o christ_n which_o be_v pour_v upon_o he_o above_o measure_n that_o
soul_n act_n 3._o 8._o if_o the_o cripple_n who_o peter_n and_o john_n cure_v leap_v and_o praise_v god_n then_o we_o have_v much_o more_o cause_n to_o praise_n and_o glorify_v god_n with_o joyful_a heart_n because_o christ_n have_v cure_v we_o of_o our_o spiritual_a lameness_n and_o of_o all_o other_o spiritual_a infirmity_n also_o 54._o also_o mat._n 27._o 54._o if_o the_o centurion_n when_o he_o see_v the_o earthquake_n and_o what_o be_v do_v at_o christ_n death_n glorify_v god_n say_v true_o this_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n then_o ought_v we_o to_o glorify_v god_n for_o our_o regeneration_n and_o for_o our_o spiritual_a life_n and_o to_o say_v true_o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o may_v daily_o see_v the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n which_o he_o do_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n to_o give_v we_o daily_a occasion_n to_o honour_n and_o glorify_v he_o and_o therefore_o this_o shall_v be_v our_o continual_a practice_n to_o magnify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n according_a to_o this_o of_o paul_n 31._o paul_n cor._n 10._o 31._o whether_o you_o ear_n or_o drink_v or_o whatsoever_o you_o do_v do_v all_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o continual_a work_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n in_o heaven_n to_o sing_v hosanna_n to_o the_o high_a and_o it_o shall_v be_v our_o constant_a care_n here_o upon_o earth_n to_o glorify_v god_n and_o to_o magnify_v he_o for_o all_o his_o benefit_n mercy_n and_o goodness_n to_o we_o thus_o we_o may_v come_v to_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o we_o have_v a_o spiritual_a life_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v redeem_v we_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n from_o all_o our_o iniquity_n and_o from_o all_o the_o issue_n of_o sin_n also_o that_o he_o have_v sanctify_v we_o and_o make_v we_o a_o holy_a people_n to_o himself_o not_o to_o serve_v the_o world_n the_o flesh_n or_o the_o devil_n but_o to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n with_o a_o clean_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n so_o likewise_o if_o we_o find_v a_o new_a principle_n of_o grace_n plant_v in_o our_o heart_n whereby_o we_o be_v able_a in_o some_o measure_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n of_o godliness_n and_o so_o to_o steer_v all_o our_o action_n that_o they_o may_v tend_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o peace_n of_o our_o conscience_n and_o the_o eternal_a comfort_n of_o our_o soul_n how_o to_o enjoy_v true_a happiness_n all_o man_n desire_v to_o be_v happy_a but_o few_o seek_v it_o where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v some_o seek_v it_o in_o moral_a virtue_n and_o natural_a endowment_n some_o in_o moral_a virtue_n and_o natural_a endowment_n some_o in_o worldly_a pleasure_n and_o profit_n other_o think_v to_o find_v it_o in_o riches_n and_o honour_n but_o all_o come_v far_o short_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o true_a happiness_n though_o they_o do_v obtain_v their_o desire_n in_o all_o earthly_a thing_n for_o all_o that_o this_o world_n do_v afford_v can_v make_v a_o man_n true_o happy_a so_o much_o as_o in_o this_o life_n much_o less_o can_v it_o procure_v his_o happiness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v for_o there_o will_v still_o be_v something_o want_v or_o else_o something_o to_o embitter_v their_o contentment_n in_o these_o thing_n here_o below_o if_o we_o have_v honour_n or_o authority_n to_o day_n we_o may_v be_v in_o ignominy_n and_o disgrace_n to_o morrow_n if_o we_o have_v riches_n and_o plenty_n to_o day_n we_o may_v be_v expose_v to_o want_v and_o penury_n to_o morrow_n sickness_n or_o pain_n will_v blast_v all_o our_o earthly_a contentment_n but_o when_o death_n come_v it_o will_v bereave_v we_o of_o they_o all_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a therefore_o to_o seek_v our_o happiness_n in_o these_o vain_a thing_n or_o to_o put_v our_o confidence_n in_o they_o for_o our_o felicity_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o uncertain_a riches_n or_o in_o transitory_a honour_n and_o pleasure_n which_o in_o themselves_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o vanity_n and_o vexation_n of_o spirit_n but_o true_a happiness_n be_v from_o above_o and_o it_o consist_v in_o the_o sweet_a fruition_n of_o god_n this_o happiness_n we_o have_v in_o the_o state_n of_o innocency_n but_o we_o lose_v it_o by_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o recover_v it_o but_o only_o by_o christ_n jesus_n our_o bless_a redeemer_n wherefore_o 32._o wherefore_o rom._n 8._o 32._o god_n take_v pity_n on_o our_o miserable_a condition_n and_o of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n and_o love_n have_v not_o spare_v his_o own_o son_n but_o deliver_v he_o up_o for_o we_o all_o to_o work_v our_o redemption_n by_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n and_o to_o bring_v we_o again_o into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o as_o john_n say_v 16._o say_v joh._n 3._o 16._o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n so_o that_o we_o can_v have_v this_o true_a blessedness_n but_o only_o by_o christ_n which_o be_v every_o where_o set_v forth_o in_o this_o treatise_n thus_o do_v the_o boundless_a mercy_n and_o unlimited_a goodness_n of_o god_n appear_v in_o offer_v his_o dear_a son_n to_o all_o that_o will_v come_v and_o embrace_v he_o but_o some_o can_v come_v because_o they_o live_v not_o where_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v preach_v which_o do_v reveal_v he_o and_o must_v instruct_v they_o in_o the_o right_a way_n how_o to_o find_v he_o some_o will_v not_o come_v but_o make_v excuse_n 19_o excuse_n lu._n 14._o 1●_n 19_o like_o those_o in_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v bid_v to_o the_o great_a supper_n for_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o their_o worldly_a occasion_n other_o be_v whole_o take_v up_o with_o carnal_a delight_n and_o pleasure_n which_o keep_v they_o from_o come_v to_o christ_n though_o they_o may_v enjoy_v this_o true_a happiness_n by_o he_o consider_v now_o that_o riches_n honour_n and_o lawful_a pleasure_n be_v not_o in_o themselves_o simple_o evil_a for_o they_o be_v god_n good_a creature_n and_o his_o blessing_n neither_o do_v they_o keep_v we_o from_o come_v unto_o christ_n but_o we_o may_v enjoy_v christ_n together_o with_o they_o if_o we_o do_v not_o immoderate_o covet_v they_o and_o use_v no_o unjust_a mean_n to_o get_v they_o or_o put_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o they_o to_o derogate_v from_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n if_o we_o enjoy_v christ_n with_o they_o he_o will_v sanctify_v they_o to_o we_o for_o our_o comfort_n and_o will_v make_v they_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o our_o happiness_n whereby_o we_o may_v glorify_v god_n and_o do_v much_o good_a to_o our_o neighbour_n otherwise_o they_o be_v but_o the_o shadow_n of_o happiness_n and_o not_o the_o true_a substance_n of_o it_o which_o in_o the_o end_n will_v be_v bitterness_n when_o we_o must_v give_v a_o strict_a account_n unto_o god_n how_o we_o have_v use_v they_o many_o a_o poor_a man_n that_o enjoy_v christ_n be_v more_o happy_a in_o his_o poverty_n than_o they_o that_o abound_v in_o wealth_n and_o honour_n if_o they_o be_v without_o christ_n for_o they_o enjoy_v a_o content_a mind_n peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o they_o have_v a_o holy_a assurance_n that_o their_o joy_n and_o happiness_n shall_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v wherefore_o he_o that_o have_v christ_n have_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o true_a happiness_n and_o some_o stream_n thereof_o will_v flow_v to_o he_o even_o in_o this_o life_n but_o this_o be_v true_a which_o christ_n say_v 44_o say_v joh._n 6._o 44_o no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o i_o except_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v i_o draw_v he_o and_o we_o can_v have_v no_o part_n in_o christ_n nor_o happiness_n by_o he_o except_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v in_o he_o this_o be_v the_o way_n that_o god_n himself_o have_v teach_v we_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n also_o this_o be_v the_o same_o way_n which_o christ_n teach_v his_o disciple_n 1_o disciple_n joh._n 14._o 1_o you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v as_o firm_a as_o strong_a and_o as_o well_o ground_v upon_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v our_o redeemer_n god_n and_o man_n as_o it_o be_v upon_o god_n alone_o or_o else_o we_o can_v enjoy_v he_o and_o all_o that_o happiness_n which_o flow_v from_o he_o though_o we_o dare_v not_o approach_v near_o unto_o god_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o divine_a justice_n yet_o through_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n our_o gracious_a redeemer_n we_o may_v have_v free_a access_n unto_o our_o god_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v he_o sit_v
upon_o his_o throne_n of_o mercy_n ready_a to_o receive_v we_o if_o our_o faith_n do_v reach_v no_o further_a than_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n what_o he_o be_v in_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o what_o he_o be_v by_o incarnation_n or_o to_o his_o glorious_a excellency_n and_o dignity_n as_o he_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n or_o to_o the_o work_n of_o man_n redemption_n as_o he_o be_v the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v but_o the_o bare_a notion_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o effectual_a enough_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o eternal_a happiness_n unregenerate_a man_n may_v know_v and_o believe_v thus_o much_o of_o christ_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o never_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n by_o christ_n because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o heart_n to_o apply_v these_o thing_n to_o themselves_o the_o devil_n do_v know_v who_o christ_n be_v they_o know_v the_o purity_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o what_o power_n he_o have_v over_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o continue_v devil_n still_o wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o rest_v in_o the_o bare_a notion_n of_o faith_n but_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v unto_o salvation_n we_o must_v then_o 9_o then_o john_n 13._o 8_o 9_o as_o paul_n and_o silas_n say_v to_o the_o jailor_n believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o must_v rest_v upon_o he_o and_o put_v our_o whole_a confidence_n in_o he_o for_o our_o salvation_n also_o we_o must_v apply_v he_o and_o all_o his_o excellent_a dignity_n to_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v well_o persuade_v of_o our_o redemption_n by_o he_o and_o that_o we_o be_v invest_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n by_o our_o union_n with_o he_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o enjoy_v the_o perfection_n of_o true_a happiness_n if_o our_o faith_n can_v reach_v thus_o high_a and_o lay_v such_o hold_n upon_o christ_n by_o their_o particular_a application_n of_o he_o then_o let_v our_o condition_n be_v what_o it_o will_v we_o shall_v be_v happy_a while_o we_o live_v more_o happy_a when_o we_o die_v and_o most_o happy_a after_o death_n for_o no_o affliction_n or_o sorrow_n of_o life_n and_o no_o violence_n or_o extremity_n of_o sickness_n in_o death_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o take_v this_o happiness_n from_o we_o and_o after_o death_n we_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o all_o our_o enemy_n for_o christ_n by_o who_o we_o have_v this_o happiness_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o loose_v it_o but_o by_o the_o grace_n and_o power_n of_o faith_n we_o shall_v still_o draw_v all_o spiritual_a comfort_n from_o christ_n to_o our_o soul_n to_o make_v we_o true_o happy_a in_o this_o life_n and_o everlasting_o happy_a in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v this_o be_v the_o grace_n and_o power_n of_o true_a faith_n to_o apply_v particular_o to_o ourselves_o whole_a christ_n god_n and_o man_n and_o as_o he_o be_v our_o prophet_n our_o high_a priest_n our_o king_n our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n and_o then_o how_o mean_a soever_o our_o condition_n be_v he_o will_v make_v we_o happy_a in_o it_o and_o will_v crown_v we_o with_o everlasting_a happiness_n hereafter_o for_o where_o this_o faith_n be_v wrought_v there_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v abide_v for_o ever_o and_o that_o soul_n must_v needs_o be_v happy_a that_o intertain_v he_o 13._o he_o eph._n 1._o 13._o for_o after_o that_o we_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n we_o be_v seal_v with_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o primise_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n this_o spirit_n of_o promise_n be_v the_o earnest_n of_o our_o inheritance_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o consider_v further_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o be_v near_o join_v unto_o christ_n 17._o christ_n eph._n 3._o 17._o for_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n this_o spiritual_a union_n with_o christ_n be_v more_o firm_a and_o close_o than_o the_o union_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n be_v with_o the_o head_n or_o the_o union_n of_o the_o branch_n be_v with_o the_o vine_n for_o nothing_o can_v separate_v we_o from_o christ_n but_o he_o will_v keep_v we_o by_o his_o almighty_a power_n unto_o salvation_n if_o we_o be_v in_o this_o bless_a condition_n nothing_o can_v hurt_v the_o well-being_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o all_o thing_n shall_v work_v together_o for_o our_o good_a what_o comfort_n and_o what_o happiness_n can_v we_o want_v if_o we_o enjoy_v christ_n his_o grace_n will_v carry_v we_o on_o cheerful_o through_o all_o the_o discomfort_n that_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o this_o life_n his_o blessing_n will_v be_v upon_o all_o that_o we_o enjoy_v and_o he_o will_v give_v we_o the_o fullness_n of_o happiness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v though_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n yet_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o many_o sorrow_n trouble_n and_o vexation_n in_o this_o life_n which_o will_v cloud_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o our_o felicity_n for_o we_o have_v here_o but_o the_o beginning_n of_o that_o bless_a and_o happy_a condition_n which_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v perfect_v and_o confirm_v to_o we_o for_o ever_o in_o christ_n wherefore_o we_o ought_v serious_o to_o meditate_v and_o study_v how_o to_o enjoy_v christ_n who_o be_v the_o true_a happiness_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o though_o we_o have_v but_o a_o taste_n of_o this_o heavenly_a consolation_n yet_o it_o will_v sweeten_v the_o bitterness_n of_o all_o misery_n and_o as_o we_o daily_o grow_v in_o grace_n so_o we_o shall_v daily_o find_v more_o comfort_n by_o our_o assurance_n of_o the_o fruition_n of_o our_o future_a felicity_n in_o heaven_n also_o the_o more_o we_o grow_v in_o grace_n the_o more_o we_o shall_v grow_v out_o of_o love_n with_o this_o world_n because_o we_o shall_v the_o better_o see_v the_o vanity_n of_o it_o and_o the_o more_o we_o shall_v grow_v in_o love_n with_o virtue_n and_o true_a piety_n which_o will_v bring_v we_o to_o this_o happiness_n and_o to_o enjoy_v it_o to_o all_o eternity_n concern_v our_o justification_n the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o this_o high_a principle_n of_o religion_n what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o how_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o great_a concernment_n to_o every_o true_a christian_a and_o it_o do_v minister_v exceed_v much_o comfort_n to_o he_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o salvation_n now_o we_o be_v justify_v not_o for_o any_o inherent_a righteousness_n that_o be_v in_o we_o nor_o for_o any_o foresee_a work_n we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nor_o for_o any_o grace_n that_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o but_o as_o god_n do_v elect_v we_o of_o his_o own_o free_a grace_n and_o love_n so_o he_o do_v also_o free_o justify_v we_o first_o 19_o first_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o by_o not_o impute_v our_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n to_o we_o second_o by_o not_o inflict_v the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n upon_o we_o three_o by_o impute_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o we_o by_o faith_n four_o by_o pronounce_v and_o declare_v we_o to_o be_v just_a in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n and_o by_o witness_v the_o same_o to_o our_o conscience_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o last_o by_o his_o gracious_a acceptation_n of_o we_o this_o be_v our_o justification_n and_o thus_o we_o may_v be_v persuade_v of_o it_o for_o god_n have_v set_v up_o his_o seat_n of_o judgement_n in_o every_o man_n conscience_n so_o that_o when_o we_o remember_v our_o sin_n if_o our_o conscience_n do_v absolve_v we_o by_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v a_o sure_a evidence_n of_o our_o justification_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o if_o it_o do_v condemn_v we_o than_o it_o will_v bind_v we_o over_o to_o answer_v for_o ourselves_o at_o the_o last_o and_o general_a judgement_n when_o it_o will_v bring_v bitter_a accusation_n against_o we_o and_o witness_v terrible_a thing_n against_o our_o poor_a soul_n for_o conscience_n be_v the_o high_a witness_n next_o under_o god_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v god_n free_a grace_n to_o we_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n who_o have_v take_v upon_o himself_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n whereby_o they_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o so_o that_o now_o god_n do_v account_v we_o just_a and_o righteous_a because_o we_o have_v no_o guilt_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v absolve_v we_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o from_o the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a to_o we_o for_o they_o and_o he_o will_v
please_v to_o satisfy_v our_o desire_n for_o our_o faith_n will_v give_v we_o as_o certain_a assurance_n to_o obtain_v what_o we_o pray_v for_o as_o if_o we_o do_v already_o enjoy_v it_o we_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o succour_n in_o our_o distress_n but_o by_o prayer_n and_o no_o prayer_n be_v prevail_v with_o god_n but_o that_o which_o come_v from_o a_o believe_a heart_n the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n may_v move_v the_o affection_n for_o the_o present_a but_o it_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n that_o be_v powerful_a with_o god_n the_o gift_n of_o prayer_n be_v but_o a_o common_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o may_v be_v without_o faith_n and_o consequent_o without_o any_o acceptance_n 6._o acceptance_n heb._n 11._o 6._o for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n but_o faith_n do_v always_o go_v along_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o prayer_n and_o god_n will_v not_o deny_v such_o a_o prayer_n though_o it_o be_v make_v in_o weak_a expression_n for_o the_o heart_n may_v sigh_v out_o a_o faithful_a prayer_n and_o groan_v out_o our_o desire_n which_o the_o tongue_n can_v utter_v nor_o express_v now_o then_o look_v well_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o thy_o affection_n and_o to_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o thy_o heart_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n to_o hear_v his_o word_n that_o thy_o mind_n be_v not_o then_o about_o thy_o worldly_a affair_n or_o thy_o thought_n set_v upon_o vain_a thing_n if_o thou_o desire_v to_o receive_v good_a thereby_o for_o if_o thou_o do_v hear_v it_o with_o a_o unbelieve_a heart_n or_o full_a of_o worldly_a care_n than_o thy_o heart_n be_v like_o barren_a ground_n where_o briar_n and_o thorn_n grow_v which_o can_v receive_v such_o spiritual_a seed_n to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n unto_o salvation_n also_o in_o thy_o holy_a meditation_n on_o spiritual_a thing_n thy_o heart_n must_v be_v first_o purify_v by_o faith_n or_o else_o thy_o meditation_n will_v not_o be_v comfortable_a to_o thy_o soul_n because_o thou_o have_v not_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o instrument_n to_o draw_v true_a consolation_n from_o christ_n so_o likewise_o when_o thou_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n see_v there_o be_v faith_n in_o thy_o eye_n to_o discern_v the_o lord_n body_n in_o those_o outward_a element_n that_o thou_o may_v spiritual_o feed_v on_o he_o to_o nourish_v thy_o soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n when_o thou_o make_v thy_o supplication_n to_o god_n believe_v faithful_o that_o thou_o shall_v receive_v what_o thou_o beg_v and_o then_o thy_o prayer_n will_v not_o return_v empty_a without_o a_o blessing_n in_o like_a manner_n if_o thy_o humiliation_n for_o thy_o sin_n be_v not_o a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o in_o outward_a show_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o thy_o heart_n with_o true_a contrition_n and_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o they_o thy_o humiliation_n be_v no_o better_a 27._o better_a 1_o kin._n 21._o 27._o than_o that_o of_o ahab_n which_o produce_v no_o reformation_n of_o life_n also_o if_o thou_o do_v confess_v thy_o sin_n when_o any_o sore_a affliction_n be_v upon_o thou_o and_o do_v not_o faithful_o purpose_n to_o forsake_v they_o and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n thou_o do_v dissemble_v with_o god_n in_o thy_o heart_n and_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v forgive_v they_o for_o thy_o confession_n be_v no_o better_a 28._o better_a exod._n 9_o 27_o 28._o than_o that_o of_o pharaoh_n and_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o comfort_n in_o such_o repentance_n because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v only_a faith_n that_o do_v perfect_a all_o thy_o service_n to_o god_n in_o their_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n four_o we_o have_v no_o defence_n against_o the_o temptation_n and_o wicked_a suggestion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o against_o the_o rage_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n but_o the_o shield_n of_o faith_n his_o fiery_a dart_n will_v wound_v our_o soul_n even_o to_o the_o death_n 16._o death_n eph._n 6._o 16._o if_o we_o do_v not_o quench_v they_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n his_o temptation_n will_v pierce_v we_o to_o the_o heart_n if_o we_o do_v not_o beat_v they_o back_o with_o this_o impenetrable_a shield_n also_o he_o lay_v his_o snare_n every_o where_o so_o cunning_o in_o our_o way_n that_o we_o can_v hardly_o take_v a_o step_n but_o we_o shall_v step_v into_o a_o snare_n 12._o snare_n psal_n 26._o 11_o 12._o if_o we_o do_v not_o walk_v in_o our_o integriy_n by_o faith_n that_o our_o foot_n may_v stand_v in_o a_o even_a place_n there_o be_v no_o place_n secure_v and_o no_o condition_n of_o life_n be_v free_a from_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o lay_v they_o in_o our_o call_n upon_o our_o table_n in_o our_o chamber_n and_o closert_n and_o under_o our_o foot_n so_o that_o every_o step_n we_o take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n be_v a_o occasion_n to_o bring_v we_o into_o his_o snare_n and_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o escape_v they_o but_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o we_o can_v have_v but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o walk_v thus_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o spirit_n then_o as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v 26._o say_v prov._n 28._o 18_o 26._o we_o walk_v upright_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v we_o walk_v wise_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v deliver_v but_o if_o we_o have_v not_o this_o spiritual_a light_n to_o guide_v we_o we_o walk_v in_o darkness_n 10._o darkness_n job_n 18._o 8_o 9_o 10._o we_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o net_n by_o our_o own_o foot_n and_o we_o walk_v upon_o a_o snare_n the_o grin_n shall_v take_v we_o by_o the_o heel_n and_o the_o robber_n shall_v prevail_v against_o we_o the_o snare_n be_v lay_v for_o we_o in_o the_o ground_n and_o a_o trap_n for_o we_o in_o the_o way_n now_o then_o 11._o then_o isa_n 50._o 11._o if_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o our_o own_o fire_n and_o in_o the_o spark_n that_o we_o have_v kindle_v this_o we_o shall_v have_v of_o god_n hand_n we_o shall_v lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n thus_o do_v spiritual_a danger_n continual_o attend_v we_o which_o of_o ourselves_o we_o can_v escape_v but_o if_o we_o trust_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o rest_v ourselves_o upon_o god_n by_o faith_n 3_o faith_n psal_n 91._o 3_o he_o will_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o fowler_n he_o will_v direct_v we_o in_o all_o our_o way_n and_o will_v guide_v our_o foot_n into_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n 23_o peace_n jer_n 10._o 23_o for_o the_o way_n of_o man_n be_v not_o in_o himself_o as_o say_v the_o prophet_n it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n that_o walk_v to_o direct_v his_o step_n if_o we_o be_v take_v in_o any_o of_o these_o snare_n that_o the_o devil_n lay_v for_o we_o we_o have_v no_o mean_n of_o recovery_n but_o by_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n for_o faith_n in_o christ_n will_v break_v the_o snare_n and_o repentance_n will_v draw_v we_o out_o of_o the_o pit_n which_o do_v threaten_v our_o destruction_n consider_v again_o that_o the_o devil_n labour_v to_o ensnare_v we_o with_o the_o allure_a bait_n of_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n thereby_o to_o draw_v away_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n from_o god_n this_o be_v a_o cunning_a way_n to_o deceive_v we_o for_o we_o suspect_v no_o danger_n and_o no_o evil_a in_o those_o thing_n unto_o which_o we_o be_v natural_o incline_v so_o that_o we_o may_v easy_o be_v deceive_v with_o these_o guild_a bait_n for_o without_o a_o spiritual_a light_n we_o can_v see_v the_o hook_n that_o be_v in_o they_o which_o will_v pull_v we_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o perdition_n 14._o perdition_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 14._o thus_o the_o devil_n can_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n 24._o light_n mat._n 24._o 24._o to_o deceive_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o very_a elect_a the_o devil_n have_v so_o many_o way_n to_o entrap_v we_o that_o we_o can_v pass_v through_o this_o dangerous_a ocean_n without_o shipwreck_n except_o christ_n be_v our_o pilot_n by_o faith_n to_o steer_v our_o heart_n and_o affection_n and_o all_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o soul_n with_o his_o spirit_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v escape_v all_o these_o rock_n and_o quicksand_n which_o do_v continual_o threaten_v the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n of_o our_o poor_a soul_n we_o can_v mount_v above_o this_o black_a cloud_n of_o deadly_a snare_n and_o danger_n without_o the_o wing_n of_o faith_n and_o we_o can_v break_v the_o cord_n of_o sin_n without_o the_o strength_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n neither_o can_v we_o get_v out_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o sin_n without_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n in_o christ_n such_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o our_o
david_n delight_n to_o meditate_v on_o the_o law_n of_o god_n because_o he_o find_v great_a sweetness_n in_o it_o 163._o it_o psal_n 119._o 163._o how_o sweet_a say_v he_o be_v thy_o word_n unto_o my_o taste_n yea_o sweet_a than_o honey_n to_o my_o mouth_n if_o we_o have_v david_n spiritual_a palate_n 13._o palate_n isa_n 58._o 13._o we_o shall_v delight_v in_o the_o lord_n sabbath_n as_o he_o say_v by_o his_o prophet_n we_o shall_v delight_v to_o hear_v his_o word_n to_o come_v to_o his_o holy_a table_n to_o meditate_v on_o his_o law_n and_o to_o practice_v all_o holy_a duty_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n also_o if_o we_o do_v set_v ourselves_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o faith_n will_v give_v we_o sufficient_a power_n against_o all_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n hope_n will_v uphold_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n when_o it_o be_v weak_a patience_n will_v make_v we_o bear_v our_o affliction_n and_o trial_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n holy_a zeal_n will_v make_v our_o prayer_n effectual_a to_o prevail_v with_o god_n to_o grant_v what_o we_o desire_v or_o what_o be_v better_o for_o we_o and_o constancy_n will_v make_v we_o continue_v in_o well-doing_n unto_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v that_o recompense_n of_o reward_n which_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n have_v promise_v as_o faith_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o spiritual_a grace_n so_o it_o will_v always_o go_v along_o with_o every_o particular_a grace_n to_o make_v it_o the_o more_o effectual_a and_o powerful_a to_o help_v we_o in_o time_n of_o need_n now_o we_o know_v the_o quickness_n of_o our_o spiritual_a taste_n by_o our_o delight_n in_o holy_a duty_n and_o in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o we_o may_v know_v the_o strength_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o every_o particular_a grace_n also_o the_o truth_n of_o every_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o we_o will_v appear_v and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n if_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n go_v along_o with_o it_o how_o to_o increase_v faith_n every_o man_n have_v not_o alike_o measure_v of_o faith_n he_o that_o i●_n weak_a in_o faith_n may_v be_v make_v strong_a and_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n may_v yet_o have_v more_o for_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a grace_n which_o will_v grow_v and_o increase_v if_o it_o be_v spiritual_o water_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n christ_n do_v find_v a_o great_a faith_n in_o the_o woman_n of_o canaan_n and_o in_o some_o other_o 28._o other_o mat._n 15._o 28._o o_o woman_n say_v he_o to_o she_o great_a be_v thy_o faith_n but_o he_o do_v often_o reprove_v his_o disciple_n for_o the_o weakness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o thus_o he_o say_v in_o particular_a unto_o peter_n 31_o peter_n mat._n 14._o 31_o o_o thou_o of_o little_a faith_n wherefoer_n do_v thou_o doubt_v peter_n doubt_v make_v he_o ready_a to_o sink_v as_o he_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n unto_o christ_n and_o it_o do_v discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o christ_n as_o if_o he_o can_v not_o give_v he_o power_n to_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n as_o he_o do_v this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o many_o of_o god_n dear_a servant_n that_o when_o they_o see_v peril_n and_o danger_n ready_a to_o fall_v upon_o they_o and_o no_o mean_n either_o to_o escape_v they_o or_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o they_o then_o fear_n and_o doubt_n will_v rise_v in_o their_o mind_n to_o discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o make_v they_o distrust_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n to_o doubt_v of_o his_o fatherly_a care_n of_o they_o and_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n to_o save_v they_o for_o sometime_o their_o faith_n may_v be_v so_o weak_a that_o it_o can_v mount_v above_o their_o humane_a capacity_n &_o they_o can_v see_v the_o wisdom_n and_o power_n of_o god_n to_o be_v far_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o their_o reason_n and_o understanding_n when_o god_n see_v such_o weakness_n in_o our_o faith_n he_o will_v tender_o visit_v we_o and_o will_v give_v we_o hope_v by_o some_o manifest_a sign_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n against_o all_o our_o fear_n and_o doubt_n though_o our_o faith_n be_v weak_a yet_o if_o it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v save_v it_o be_v grow_v and_o it_o be_v last_v faith_n be_v save_v because_o it_o do_v unite_v we_o unto_o christ_n with_o a_o unseparable_a union_n who_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o by_o who_o only_o we_o must_v be_v save_v 12._o save_v act._n 4._o 11_o 12._o christ_n be_v that_o stone_n which_o be_v set_v at_o nought_o of_o the_o bvilder_n which_o be_v bec●me_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o for_o there_o be_v none_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n give_v among_o man_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v also_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o faith_n first_o 2._o first_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 2._o if_o we_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o milk_n of_o the_o breast_n that_o we_o may_v thereby_o grow_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pure_o preach_v without_o the_o mixture_n of_o erroneous_a doctrine_n it_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n sow_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o his_o minister_n and_o he_o will_v water_v it_o with_o his_o spirit_n to_o make_v it_o increase_v and_o fructify_v that_o we_o may_v grow_v in_o grace_n until_o we_o come_v to_o a_o full_a stature_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v hear_v i●_n with_o sanctify_a heart_n and_o pure_a affection_n second_o we_o may_v great_o increase_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v spiritual_o feed_v upon_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n which_o be_v the_o true_a food_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o heavenly_a nourishment_n of_o that_o spiritual_a life_n which_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o often_o we_o do_v thus_o feed_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n the_o more_o we_o cherish_v this_o spiritual_a life_n and_o the_o more_o we_o increase_v our_o faith_n and_o make_v all_o other_o save_v grace_n the_o strong_a in_o we_o three_o prayer_n be_v a_o special_a mean_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o we_o have_v the_o beginning_n of_o faith_n from_o god_n the_o increase_n of_o it_o also_o and_o the_o establishment_n of_o it_o be_v from_o god_n and_o we_o must_v beg_v it_o of_o he_o by_o our_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n or_o else_o we_o can_v obtain_v it_o thus_o say_v the_o apostle_n unto_o christ_n 5._o christ_n lu._n 17._o 5._o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n also_o thus_o say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o dumb_a child_n unto_o christ_n 24_o christ_n mar._n 9_o 24_o lord_n i_o believe_v help_v thou_o my_o unbelief_n god_n be_v ready_a to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n but_o special_o when_o they_o make_v such_o petition_n as_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o grant_v which_o be_v such_o as_o do_v make_v most_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o nothing_o can_v advance_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n more_o than_o when_o they_o crave_v the_o increase_n of_o their_o faith_n without_o which_o they_o can_v glorify_v god_n in_o no_o service_n which_o they_o perform_v unto_o he_o for_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o so_o consequent_o to_o honour_v he_o in_o any_o holy_a duty_n which_o he_o command_v four_o faith_n will_v grow_v and_o increase_v by_o our_o daily_a meditation_n on_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n how_o faithful_o he_o have_v perform_v all_o his_o promise_n how_o ready_a and_o how_o able_a he_o be_v still_o to_o perform_v they_o if_o we_o can_v rest_v and_o depend_v upon_o they_o by_o faith_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o god_n be_v immutable_a and_o omnipotent_a in_o his_o own_o essence_n that_o he_o be_v truth_n itself_o that_o he_o will_v not_o alter_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v decree_v in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n and_o that_o he_o will_v perform_v all_o that_o he_o have_v promise_v in_o his_o word_n it_o will_v great_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n and_o uphold_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n when_o any_o difficulty_n or_o danger_n press_v hard_a upon_o we_o which_o otherwise_o will_v shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n five_o the_o daily_a experience_n which_o we_o have_v of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o goodness_n to_o we_o in_o all_o condition_n of_o life_n whether_o we_o be_v in_o prosperity_n or_o in_o adversity_n in_o health_n or_o in_o